Selected quad for the lemma: lord_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
lord_n captain_n free_a great_a 102 3 2.1282 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A08047 Of the eternall felicity of the saints fiue bookes. Writen in Latin by the most illustrious Cardinall Bellarmine, of the Society of Iesus. And translated into English by A.B. Permissu superiorum.; De æterna felicitate sanctorum. English Bellarmino, Roberto Francesco Romolo, Saint, 1542-1621.; Everard, Thomas, 1560-1633.; Bellarmino, Roberto Francesco Romolo, Saint, 1542-1621. De gemitu columbae English. Selections. aut 1638 (1638) STC 1841; ESTC S113735 165,177 472

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

do_v ever_o busy_v their_o mind_n with_o the_o thought_n of_o it_o and_o breathles_o labour_v after_o it_o and_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a do_v humble_o beseech_v it_o of_o god_n with_o inutterable_a sigh_n and_o lamentation_n god_n do_v willing_o hear_v man_n pray_v in_o this_o manner_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o replenish_v they_o with_o the_o gift_n of_o justice_n so_o as_o they_o be_v satiate_v therewith_o may_v even_o breathe_v nothing_o but_o word_n and_o work_n of_o justice_n but_o money_n or_o riches_n be_v not_o a_o good_a of_o this_o nature_n as_o that_o who_o desire_v or_o pray_v for_o it_o to_o god_n be_v present_o hear_v since_o many_o abuse_n the_o use_n of_o money_n our_o riches_n but_o of_o justice_n there_o can_v be_v no_o abuse_n to_o conclude_v justice_n be_v like_a to_o wisdom_n of_o which_o s._n james_n say_v cap._n 1._o if_o any_o of_o you_o lack_v wisdom_n let_v he_o ask_v of_o god_n who_o give_v to_o all_o man_n abundant_o and_o upbrayd_v none_o o_o ineffable_a clemency_n of_o god_n who_o be_v more_o ready_a and_o wi●ling_a to_o give_v we_o those_o thing_n which_o conduce_v to_o our_o soul_n good_a than_o we_o be_v either_o to_o demand_v or_o desire_v they_o whosoever_o therefore_o want_v the_o wisdom_n of_o saint_n or_o the_o gift_n of_o justice_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a disposition_n for_o the_o gain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n let_v he_o most_o humble_o beseech_v god_n by_o most_o earnest_a prayer_n and_o deep_a sigh_n and_o complaint_n and_o he_o shall_v infallible_o obtain_v his_o desire_n for_o god_n give_v to_o man_n thus_o pray_v and_o he_o do_v not_o repel_v or_o exclude_v any_o man_n neither_o do_v he_o give_v spare_o and_o niggardly_a but_o large_o abondant_o &_o without_o any_o upbraid_a or_o delay_n for_o god_n be_v not_o aggrieve_v with_o man_n importunity_n herein_o now_o what_o may_v we_o here_o say_v with_o what_o colour_n of_o excuse_n can_v a_o man_n plaster_n over_o either_o his_o ignorance_n or_o weakness_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n on●y_v thirst_v after_o justice_n and_o demand_v it_o of_o god_n and_o thou_o shall_v full_o drink_v thereof_o to_o thy_o own_o satiety_n but_o do_v not_o thirst_v after_o the_o blandishment_n or_o allurement_n of_o the_o flesh_n neither_o after_o the_o empty_a smoke_n of_o honour_n nor_o ●ny_v other_o earthly_a benefit_n so_o shall_v thou_o draw_v out_o thy_o day_n in_o this_o world_n in_o all_o justice_n sobriety_n and_o piety_n &_o in_o the_o next_o thou_o shall_v arrive_v to_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o second_o path_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n chap._n viii_o another_o tract_n or_o path_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o which_o our_o captain_n show_v we_o be_v that_o of_o matt._n 5._o bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n by_o which_o word_n we_o be_v not_o command_v to_o empty_v our_o chest_n and_o bag_n altogether_o of_o money_n but_o only_o to_o keep_v our_o heart_n void_a of_o all_o greedy_a affection_n and_o desire_v of_o earthly_a thing_n our_o lord_n do_v offer_v to_o we_o great_a wealth_n and_o abundance_n of_o riches_n but_o he_o will_v not_o give_v they_o to_o we_o except_o we_o do_v bring_v a_o open_a hart_n free_a and_o estrange_v from_o all_o worldly_a covetousness_n the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_n be_v covetousness_n 1._o tim._n 6._o which_o in_o the_o greek_a be_v call_v philargyria_n that_o be_v love_v of_o silver_n the_o root_n of_o all_o good_a be_v charity_n which_o two_o thing_n can_v stand_v together_o therefore_o except_o a_o man_n become_v true_o and_o whole_o poor_a in_o spirit_n so_o as_o whether_o he_o have_v great_a or_o small_a store_n of_o riches_n his_o mind_n be_v not_o fix_v upon_o they_o but_o that_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o distribute_v to_o they_o ●hat_n want_n and_o reserve_v to_o himself_o ●n●y_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o his_o state_n this_o ●an_v i_o say_v can_v fulfil_v the_o justice_n of_o ●he_n kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o consequent_o can_v obtain_v that_o kingdom_n this_o be_v the_o true_a tract_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o in_o this_o path_n christ_n himself_o do_v first_o tread_v who_o for_o we_o be_v ●ade_v poor_a that_o he_o may_v enrich_v ●s_a through_o his_o poverty_n and_o although_o ●e_v have_v some_o money_n yet_o he_o deliver_v ●t_a to_o judas_n to_o keep_v who_o he_o know_v ●o_o be_v a_o thief_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v ●nderstand_v his_o mind_n be_v not_o possess_v with_o the_o desire_n of_o money_n this_o tract_n the_o apostle_n also_o do_v follow_v ●ho_fw-mi may_v easy_o have_v procure_v abundance_n of_o riches_n since_o they_o be_v fa●ous_a for_o work_v of_o wondrous_a sinne_n and_o miracle_n do_v speak_v the_o ●_z of_o all_o country_n and_o become_v admirable_a throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n ●or_a their_o wisdom_n but_o they_o who_o once_o ●yd_v behold_v we_o have_v leave_v all_o thing_n ●nd_v follow_v thou_o do_v taste_v the_o sweetness_n of_o liberty_n as_o be_v free_a from_o the_o ●ares_n and_o love_n of_o riches_n and_o conten●ng_v themselves_o with_o meat_n drink_n clothes_n do_v esteem_v piety_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o great_a riches_n this_o path_n not_o only_a monk_n and_o hermit_n but_o also_o king_n and_o supreme_a bishop_n have_v walk_v in_o who_o be_v arrive_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n certain_o s._n lewis_n king_n of_o france_n be_v rich_a but_o withal_o he_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o he_o do_v use_v but_o ordinary_a clothing_n do_v much_o fast_n be_v liberal_a and_o openhanded_a to_o the_o poor_a and_o only_o to_o himself_o most_o spare_a nor_o do_v we_o read_v that_o he_o waste_v any_o money_n in_o play_n or_o banquet_n s._n gregory_n also_o be_v pope_n do_v possess_v in_o diverse_a place_n great_a store_n of_o ecclesiastical_a patrimony_n and_o riches_n yet_o because_o he_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n he_o be_v most_o profuse_a and_o bountiful_a in_o give_v alm_n and_o most_o spare_a yea_o even_o almost_o covetous_a in_o bestow_v any_o thing_n upon_o himself_o or_o his_o kindred_n thus_o he_o may_v well_o be_v think_v to_o have_v exceed_v the_o bond_n of_o liberality_n towards_o other_o and_o of_o sparingnes_n towards_o himself_o and_o his_o friend_n but_o this_o be_v the_o way_n which_o lead_v to_o life_n everlasting_a we_o will_v adjoine_v to_o the_o former_a example_n two_o rare_a woman_n s._n paula●e_v ●e_z roman_n who_o life_n be_v write_v 〈◊〉_d s._n jerome_n be_v no_o less_o rich_a in_o possession_n and_o revenue_n then_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o be_v a_o woman_n of_o most_o ●●ble_a extraction_n she_o bestow_v all_o her_o ●ealth_n &_o riches_n in_o erect_v of_o mona●●ries_n and_o relieve_n the_o poor_a and_o ●●is_n with_o such_o fervour_n of_o charity_n as_o ●●at_a she_o desire_v in_o soul_n to_o be_v bring_v 〈◊〉_d that_o low_a degree_n of_o want_n as_o that_o the_o charity_n and_o mercy_n of_o other_o shall_v discharge_v her_o funeral_n now_o how_o spare_v in_o charge_n she_o be_v to_o herself_o appear_v in_o that_o she_o forbear_v to_o feed_v upon_o flesh_n or_o egg_n or_o to_o drink_v wine_n for_o linen_n next_o to_o her_o body_n s●e_o wear_v a_o haircloth_n she_o do_v lie_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o do_v purge_v &_o cancel_v even_o her_o small_a offence_n with_o continual_a prayer_n and_o tear_n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o heduigis_fw-la queen_n of_o polonia_n be_v rich_a in_o temporal_a faculty_n but_o more_o rich_a in_o poverty_n of_o spirit_n she_o do_v content_v herself_o with_o one_o poor_a gown_n and_o wear_v i●_n alone_o even_o in_o the_o great_a frost_n she_o f●sted_v every_o day_n sunday_n &_o great_a festival_n day_n only_o except_v she_o afflict_v her_o tender_a body_n with_o sharp_a discipline_n with_o great_a watch_v and_o all_o manner_n of_o austerity_n now_o from_o this_o he_o course_n of_o life_n we_o may_v easy_o conjecture_v upon_o what_o thing_n she_o do_v spen●_n all_o her_o regal_a wealth_n and_o how_o small_a a_o affection_n or_o rather_o none_n she_o bear_v to_o riches_n therefore_o we_o be_v not_o to_o wonder_v that_o a_o woman_n so_o poor_a i●_n spirit_n and_o so_o desirous_a to_o shake_v of_o al●_n temporal_a care_n do_v at_o the_o last_o through_o such_o spiritual_a endeavour_n arrive_v to_o heaven_n the_o three_o path_n way_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n chap._n ix_o the_o three_o way_n appoint_v by_o ou●_n spiritual_a captain_n be_v this_o ma●●_n s._n bless_a be_v they_o who_o suffer_v persecuti●●_n for_o justice_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o wisdom_n of_o jesas_n chri●●_n our_o doctor_n be_v most_o admirable_a yet_o altogether_o secret_a and_o unknown_a to_o th●_n wiseman_n of_o this_o world_n for_o who_o woul●_n believe_v be_v it_o not_o
upon_o us._n to_o conclude_v we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o he_o who_o say_v and_o can_v lie_v to_o wit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_n be_v so_o good_a and_o so_o fair_a as_o that_o he_o alone_o deserve_v to_o be_v style_v good_a and_o fair_a but_o here_o some_o will_v insist_v and_o say_v it_o be_v very_o hard_a and_o even_o incompatible_a with_o our_o nature_n to_o be_v force_v for_o god_n sake_n to_o lose_v our_o substance_n and_o riches_n our_o near_a friend_n yea_o sometime_o our_o own_o life_n i_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v hard_a to_o man_n not_o love_v god_n but_o to_o such_o as_o do_v love_n he_o and_o covet_v to_o enjoy_v he_o say_v it_o be_v light_a and_o easy_a especial_o see_v in_o recompense_n of_o our_o contempt_n of_o these_o temporal_a good_n there_o be_v prepare_v for_o we_o good_n incomparable_o fare_v more_o in_o number_n and_o better_o o_o observe_v the_o disparity_n thou_o lose_v corruptible_a and_o fade_a riches_n thou_o shall_v gain_v a_o everlasting_a kingdom_n thou_o lose_v father_n and_o brother_n and_o friend_n thou_o shall_v gain_v god_n to_o be_v thy_o father_n and_o christ_n thy_o brother_n and_o all_o the_o angel_n &_o saint_n thy_o friend_n and_o companion_n thou_o lose_v a_o temporal_a life_n even_o overcharge_v with_o misery_n thou_o shall_v gain_v a_o eternal_a life_n fraught_v with_o all_o felicity_n hear_v then_o this_o canticle_n or_o song_n of_o divine_a love_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v give_v all_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o house_n for_o love_n as_o nothing_o shall_v he_o despise_v it_o cant._n 8._o and_o a_o little_a afore_o many_o water_n mean_v of_o tribulation_n can_v quench_v charity_n neither_o shall_v flood_n overwhelm_v it_o hear_v a_o so_o one_o of_o those_o who_o love_v god_n rom._n 8._o who_o then_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o christ_n tribulation_n or_o distress_n or_o famine_n or_o nakedness_n or_o danger_n or_o persecution_n or_o the_o sword_n but_o in_o all_o these_o we_o overcome_v because_o of_o he_o that_o have_v love_v us._n but_o some_o do_v yet_o further_o urge_v so_o to_o love_v my_o neighbour_n as_o to_o communicate_v and_o impart_v my_o good_n to_o he_o yea_o though_o he_o be_v my_o deadly_a enemy_n and_o have_v much_o injure_v i_o so_o as_o i_o ought_v not_o only_o to_o pardon_v he_o but_o to_o heap_v benefit_n upon_o he_o this_o appear_v to_o be_v very_o harsh_a and_o repugnant_a to_o humane_a nature_n this_o perhaps_o may_v be_v true_o say_v be_v speak_v of_o man_n nature_n as_o it_o be_v corrupt_v by_o sin_n but_o not_o of_o nature_n repair_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o god_n himself_o communicate_v his_o good_n and_o benefit_n even_o to_o his_o enemy_n and_o do_v he_o not_o due_o pardon_v his_o enemy_n render_v to_o they_o by_o way_n of_o a_o strange_a exchange_n good_a for_o bad_a while_o he_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o shine_v upon_o the_o good_a &_o the_o evil_a and_o rain_v upon_o the_o just_a &_o unjust_a matth._n 5._o now_o if_o god_n do_v so_o bear_v himself_o towards_o his_o enemy_n it_o then_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o contrary_a either_o to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n or_o of_o man_n who_o be_v create_v to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n to_o love_v our_o enemy_n or_o to_o do_v they_o benefit_n but_o it_o be_v only_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o beast_n and_o of_o those_o man_n who_o when_o they_o be_v in_o honour_n do_v not_o understand_v they_o be_v compare_v to_o beast_n without_o understanding_n &_o become_v like_a to_o they_o ps_n 48._o a_o second_o discourse_n of_o humility_n which_o be_v the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n chap._n xiii_o in_o this_o last_o place_n i_o come_v to_o humility_n which_o be_v like_a to_o its_o sister_n the_o which_o virtue_n as_o it_o beget_v great_a strait_n to_o the_o proud_a and_o arrogant_a so_o with_o ease_n it_o begin_v to_o be_v dilate_v and_o make_v large_a to_o such_o who_o will_v be_v teach_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n for_o first_o we_o ought_v to_o humble_v ourselves_o under_o the_o potent_a hand_n of_o god_n as_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n have_v admonish_v we_o 1._o pet_n 5._o and_o as_o his_o coapostle_n s._n james_n confirm_v cap._n 4._o now_o what_o difficulty_n can_v be_v imagine_v to_o be_v in_o the_o humiliation_n of_o a_o mortal_a man_n to_o the_o immortal_a and_o omnipotent_a god_n furthermore_o we_o ought_v also_o to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o low_a place_n among_o man_n as_o presume_v they_o to_o be_v better_a than_o ourselves_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n counsel_v we_o say_v philip_n 2._o each_o one_o count_v other_o better_a than_o himself_o therefore_o who_o know_v themselves_o and_o be_v privy_a to_o their_o own_o imperfection_n but_o know_v not_o what_o secret_a virtue_n may_v lie_v hide_v in_o the_o breast_n of_o other_o do_v suffer_v no_o difficulty_n to_o repute_v other_o superior_a to_o themselves_o and_o do_v willing_o honour_v they_o and_o give_v to_o they_o the_o high_a and_o more_o worthy_a place_n for_o as_o pride_n grow_v from_o the_o ignorance_n of_o a_o man_n no_o know_v himself_o so_o humility_n from_o the_o true_a know_v of_o himself_o a_o proud_a hart_n quick_o penetrate_v into_o the_o vice_n which_o itself_o have_v not_o but_o which_o other_o have_v because_o all_o these_o be_v out_o of_o he_o yet_o his_o proper_a vice_n though_o often_o far_o great_a and_o know_v to_o all_o other_o man_n this_o man_n see_v not_o because_o they_o be_v within_o he_o even_o as_o the_o eye_n which_o see_v not_o what_o be_v within_o itself_o but_o only_o what_o be_v without_o it_o the_o pharisy_n luc_n 18._o may_v be_v a_o example_n hereof_o to_o we_o who_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n that_o he_o be_v not_o as_o other_o man_n be_v to_o wit_n robber_n injust_a adulterer_n for_o he_o do_v see_v that_o the_o vice_n of_o rapine_n injustice_n adultery_n be_v not_o in_o he_o but_o he_o do_v not_o see_v the_o more_o grievous_a vice_n which_o do_v lie_v lurk_v within_o he_o i_o mean_v pride_n blindness_n of_o mind_n and_o impenitency_n and_o therefore_o he_o prefer_v himself_o before_o the_o publican_n pray_v in_o the_o same_o temple_n but_o the_o publican_n who_o be_v of_o a_o more_o clear_a sight_n do_v see_v the_o vice_n in_o himself_o but_o not_o the_o virtue_n and_o therefore_o he_o take_v the_o low_a place_n stand_v a_o far_o off_o beat_v his_o breast_n and_o implore_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n and_o so_o the_o event_n be_v that_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n this_o poor_a humble_a man_n depart_v justify_v that_o other_o reprobate_v wherefore_o if_o a_o man_n void_v his_o judgement_n of_o all_o selfelove_n will_v labour_v diligent_o to_o know_v his_o own_o imbecility_n and_o imperfection_n he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o strait_n in_o enter_v into_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n to_o all_o these_o precedent_a discourse_n it_o be_v needful_a to_o adjoine_v this_o one_o consideration_n that_o whereas_o the_o port_n or_o gate_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n seem_v most_o narrow_a and_o almost_o impenetrable_a to_o those_o who_o come_v to_o be_v heavy_o burden_v and_o load_v or_o who_o be_v of_o a_o gross_a and_o corpulent_a body_n or_o clothe_v with_o many_o garment_n or_o labour_n to_o enter_v therein_o lift_v themselves_o up_o in_o their_o full_a height_n and_o stature_n so_o be_v the_o same_o gate_n become_v large_a and_o easy_a for_o entrance_n to_o those_o who_o come_v unto_o it_o without_o burden_n naked_a lean_a and_o crooked_a or_o bend_v themselves_o and_o therefore_o the_o fault_n be_v in_o we_o why_o we_o may_v not_o easy_o enter_v by_o that_o gate_n through_o the_o which_o many_o saint_n without_o any_o difficulty_n and_o trouble_n have_v already_o pass_v therefore_o let_v a_o christian_a man_n lie_v down_o the_o burden_n of_o his_o riches_n let_v he_o know_v that_o riches_n be_v give_v by_o god_n to_o he_o to_o be_v a_o dispenser_n and_o not_o a_o absolute_a lord_n thereof_o that_o so_o he_o do_v distribute_v they_o to_o the_o needy_a &_o poor_a and_o not_o reserve_v they_o to_o himself_o alone_o and_o then_o it_o shall_v to_o fall_v out_o that_o his_o mind_n be_v free_a from_o the_o love_n of_o riches_n and_o he_o lighten_v of_o the_o great_a burden_n thereof_o shall_v find_v the_o gate_n wide_o enough_o for_o his_o entrance_n in_o like_a sort_n let_v he_o free_a and_o deliver_v himself_o of_o that_o overmuch_o fatness_n as_o i_o may_v term_v it_o of_o carnal_a delight_n or_o rather_o let_v he_o cast_v out_o the_o hurtful_a and_o dangerous_a humour_n of_o several_a concupiscence_n which_o
depart_v from_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o flock_n the_o apostolical_a trumpet_n thus_o sound_v in_o our_o ear_n ephes_n 6._o our_o wrestle_n be_v not_o against_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o against_o prince_n and_o potentate_n against_o the_o governor_n of_o this_o darkness_n against_o the_o spirituall_n of_o wickedness_n in_o the_o celestial_o and_o if_o the_o captain_n be_v absent_a who_o shall_v teach_v the_o soldier_n how_o to_o avoid_v the_o weapon_n of_o their_o enemy_n certain_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o in_o he_o to_o all_o pastor_n feed_v my_o sheep_n of_o other_o thing_n he_o speak_v nothing_o that_o we_o may_v understand_v thereby_o that_o the_o feed_n of_o the_o flock_n be_v the_o principal_a charge_n incumbent_a upon_o a_o pastor_n in_o like_a sort_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o a_o bispop_n it_o be_v say_v vade_fw-la praedica_fw-la populo_fw-la tibi_fw-la commisso_fw-la go_v preach_v unto_o the_o people_n commit_v unto_o thou_o but_o touch_v temporal_a business_n nothing_o be_v add_v or_o speak_v thereby_o to_o admonish_v the_o bishop_n that_o temporal_a thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v balance_v and_o equal_v with_o spiritual_a and_o much_o less_o to_o be_v prefer_v to_o conclude_v in_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 17.18.19.20_o bishop_n be_v earnest_o command_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o undertake_v the_o government_n of_o widow_n stranger_n pupil_n by_o themselves_o but_o by_o the_o mean_n and_o labour_n of_o the_o archpriest_n &_o the_o arch-deacon_n in_o like_a sort_n that_o bishop_n shall_v not_o undergo_v the_o defence_n of_o will_n or_o contention_n for_o any_o transitory_a matter_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o engross_v to_o themselves_o the_o care_n &_o deal_n about_o other_o man_n state_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v whole_o and_o only_o devote_v their_o labour_n to_o read_v pray_v and_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n therefore_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n consist_v of_o two_o hundred_o and_o fourteen_o bishop_n at_o which_o s._n austin_n be_v present_a command_v that_o bishop_n shall_v negotiate_v and_o execute_v all_o temporal_a affair_n &_o occasion_n though_o otherwise_o pious_a and_o necessary_a by_o the_o ministry_n and_o labour_n of_o other_o man_n that_o so_o themselves_o may_v more_o free_o spend_v their_o day_n in_o defend_v and_o multiply_v of_o their_o flock_n therefore_o this_o parable_n as_o it_o show_v that_o eternal_a felicity_n be_v chiefef_o to_o be_v desire_v as_o contain_v most_o great_a power_n accompany_v with_o most_o great_a pleasure_n so_o also_o it_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o way_n to_o this_o felicity_n be_v continual_a &_o indefatigable_a labour_n place_v in_o seek_v and_o procure_v the_o health_n of_o a_o man_n be_v own_o soul_n and_o of_o other_o man_n also_o which_o labour_n whosoever_o do_v seek_v to_o decline_v and_o avoid_v shall_v not_o only_o be_v deprive_v of_o that_o felicity_n and_o of_o that_o most_o excellent_a power_n and_o pleasure_n but_o be_v damn_v to_o hell_n shall_v there_o suffer_v eternal_a punishment_n for_o thus_o do_v our_o lord_n speak_v matth._n 25._o the_o unprofitable_a seruamt_v cast_v you_o out_o into_o utter_a darkness_n there_o shall_v be_v weep_a and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n and_o here_o we_o be_v diligent_o to_o note_n &_o observe_v that_o the_o servant_n in_o this_o place_n eondemed_a to_o such_o punishment_n be_v not_o call_v wicked_a or_o facinorous_a but_o unprofitable_a only_o for_o admit_v that_o a_o bishop_n a_o parish_n priest_n or_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n or_o father_n of_o a_o family_n or_o any_o other_o may_v be_v free_a from_o other_o vice_n yet_o in_o this_o respect_n only_o that_o he_o be_v unprofitable_a that_o be_v he_o do_v not_o procure_v and_o labour_v according_a to_o his_o power_n his_o own_o health_n &_o the_o health_n of_o other_o subject_n unto_o he_o in_o this_o respect_n i_o say_v he_o shall_v be_v cast_v out_o into_o utter_a darkness_n where_o shall_v be_v weep_a &_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n which_o shall_v never_o have_v end_n and_o if_o the_o unprofitable_a servant_n shall_v suffer_v these_o insufferable_a calamity_n what_o portion_n then_o be_v allot_v to_o the_o wicked_a servant_n who_o be_v covetous_a malignant_a proud_a luxurious_a and_o whole_o drown_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o vice_n if_o the_o unprofitable_a seruamt_v be_v reject_v what_o account_n and_o reckon_n then_o must_v he_o who_o be_v wicked_a render_v to_o our_o lord_n touch_v the_o talent_n deliver_v unto_o he_o true_o they_o who_o deep_o &_o intense_o consider_v these_o thing_n will_v not_o ambitious_o seek_v after_o honour_n or_o authority_n and_o if_o it_o be_v force_o impose_v upon_o they_o let_v they_o ever_o watch_v with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a since_o they_o be_v to_o render_v a_o most_o exact_a and_o strict_a account_n for_o the_o soul_n commit_v unto_o their_o charge_n of_o the_o great_a supper_n chap._n v._n the_o five_o parable_n which_o be_v in_o luke_n 14._o resemble_v the_o felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o a_o great_a supper_n and_o this_o true_o not_o without_o just_a reason_n in_o a_o great_a nuptial_a or_o regal_a supper_n all_o thing_n be_v there_o find_v which_o may_v delight_v the_o sense_n of_o man_n or_o which_o may_v show_v the_o power_n riches_n and_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n true_o king_n assuerus_n who_o govern_v over_o a_o hundred_o twenty_o &_o seven_o province_n desire_v in_o great_a vaunt_a to_o show_v the_o riches_n and_o glory_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o largeness_n of_o his_o power_n do_v not_o find_v a_o more_o fit_v and_o convenient_a mean_n thereto_o then_o to_o make_v a_o most_o sumptuous_a and_o magnificent_a banquet_n for_o first_o at_o a_o great_a supper_n the_o eye_n be_v delight_v in_o the_o most_o costly_a furniture_n and_o hang_n of_o the_o place_n in_o the_o order_n of_o officer_n in_o costly_a and_o courtlike_a apparel_n in_o the_o golden_a and_o silver_n plate_n wherein_o the_o meat_n be_v serve_v the_o ear_n be_v much_o delight_v with_o melodious_a music_n the_o sense_n of_o smell_n be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o odour_n of_o flower_n of_o precious_a perfume_n and_o with_o other_o thing_n breathe_v forth_o fragrant_a and_o sweet_a smell_n the_o sense_n of_o taste_n be_v ravish_v with_o the_o curious_a season_n of_o the_o meat_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o with_o delicious_a wynes_n to_o conclude_v the_o sense_n of_o touch_v be_v great_o content_v with_o repose_v upon_o most_o soft_a and_o downy_a bed_n therefore_o at_o a_o regal_a supper_n all_o corporal_a good_n do_v meet_v together_o in_o the_o great_a affluency_n this_o world_n can_v afford_v so_o as_o our_o lord_n willing_a to_o represent_v that_o felicity_n which_o comprehend_v in_o itself_o all_o sort_n of_o good_n will_v compare_v it_o to_o a_o great_a supper_n of_o which_o supper_n we_o also_o thus_o read_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n bless_v be_v they_o who_o be_v call_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n apoc._n 19_o furthermore_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v know_v in_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o all_o the_o glorify_a body_n shall_v be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o last_o table_n upon_o who_o all_o delicate_n &_o daintye_n shall_v be_v place_v now_o the_o sweetness_n of_o these_o dainty_n be_v so_o great_a as_o that_o s._n peter_n once_o see_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o shine_v like_a to_o the_o sun_n say_v matth._n 17._o it_o be_v good_a for_o we_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o if_o the_o dainty_n of_o banquet_n be_v of_o so_o great_a worth_n of_o what_o dignity_n then_o shall_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o supper_n be_v which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o fruition_n of_o the_o divinity_n final_o all_o the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n be_v nothing_o else_o then_o as_o bark_n or_o husk_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o paradise_n and_o if_o these_o husk_n be_v of_o that_o force_n as_o to_o enchant_v man_n with_o the_o love_n and_o desire_v thereof_o what_o then_o be_v the_o fruit_n themselves_o able_a to_o work_v in_o man_n soul_n and_o if_o the_o fruit_n be_v of_o such_o virtue_n what_o then_o may_v we_o conceive_v the_o more_o solid_a and_o substantial_a meat_n of_o this_o great_a supper_n to_o be_v doubtless_o they_o shall_v be_v such_o as_o that_o they_o may_v be_v ever_o eat_v and_o ever_o desire_v without_o any_o fastidious_a satiety_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o imagine_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o supper_n in_o heaven_n such_o as_o great_a prince_n have_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o their_o marriage_n see_v in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o angel_n be_v who_o neither_o marry_v nor_o feed_v on_o meat_n necessary_a to_o the_o mantain_v of_o a_o mortal_a life_n therefore_o that_o supper_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o riches_n full_a of_o delight_n full_a of_o ornament_n &_o full_a of_o glory_n agreeable_a to_o the_o
state_n of_o the_o bless_a these_o material_a thing_n be_v speak_v unto_o we_o in_o this_o our_o exile_n because_o we_o do_v not_o here_o see_v better_a or_o great_a matter_n but_o from_o these_o we_o ought_v to_o learn_v that_o that_o celestial_a supper_n shall_v so_o much_o excel_v our_o supper_n upon_o earth_n though_o never_o so_o dainty_a or_o curious_a by_o how_o much_o heaven_n be_v better_a than_o the_o earth_n and_o by_o how_o much_o god_n who_o shall_v prepare_v this_o supper_n do_v transcend_v and_o surmount_v mortal_a king_n in_o power_n and_o riches_n but_o hear_v it_o may_v be_v question_v why_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o bless_a be_v compare_v rather_o to_o a_o supper_n then_o to_o a_o dinner_n of_o this_o point_n the_o reason_n be_v in_o that_o the_o time_n of_o dinner_n be_v about_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o day_n and_o the_o time_n after_o dinner_n till_o supper_n be_v common_o spend_v in_o execute_v of_o business_n whereas_o supper_n be_v prepare_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o day_n when_o as_o all_o negotiation_n be_v finish_v after_o which_o supper_n follow_v rest_n and_o repose_v and_o therefore_o in_o another_o parable_n which_o be_v in_o matth._n 22._o where_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o time_n of_o dinner_n introduce_v for_o the_o marriage_n with_o the_o church_n his_o spouse_n be_v begin_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o day_n that_o be_v long_o before_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n after_o which_o time_n of_o dinner_n many_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n especial_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o mankind_n with_o god_n be_v treat_v but_o after_o all_o business_n and_o sollicitude_n shall_v cease_v than_o the_o bring_n of_o the_o spouse_n to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n and_o the_o nuptial_a supper_n shall_v follow_v that_o be_v eternal_a repose_n at_o the_o close_a of_o the_o day_n and_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o yet_o it_o will_v be_v worthy_a of_o observation_n to_o know_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v that_o we_o may_v be_v admit_v unto_o this_o supper_n and_o of_o this_o our_o lord_n himself_o have_v be_v please_v to_o instruct_v we_o in_o this_o parable_n say_v luc._n 14._o a_o certain_a man_n make_v a_o great_a supper_n and_o call_v many_o but_o they_o begin_v all_o at_o once_o to_o make_v excuse_n the_o first_o say_v i_o have_v buy_v a_o farm_n and_o i_o must_v needs_o go_v forth_o and_o see_v it_o i_o pray_v thou_o have_v i_o excuse_v and_o another_o say_v i_o have_v buy_v five_o yoke_n of_o ox_n and_o i_o go_v to_o prove_v they_o i_o pray_v thou_o hold_v i_o excuse_v the_o three_o say_v i_o have_v marry_v a_o wife_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v come_v a_o wonderful_a matter_n man_n be_v invite_v by_o god_n to_o a_o nuptial_a and_o regal_a supper_n and_o they_o refuse_v to_o come_v what_o then_o will_v they_o do_v if_o they_o be_v call_v to_o the_o labour_n of_o war_n or_o to_o a_o long_a and_o perilous_a journey_n but_o this_o be_v humane_a blindness_n which_o can_v hardly_o be_v bring_v to_o believe_v any_o thing_n but_o what_o it_o see_v but_o what_o be_v that_o which_o mortal_a man_n prefer_v before_o the_o divine_a supper_n which_o be_v our_o supreme_a and_o eternal_a good_a three_o thing_n our_o lord_n set_v down_o as_o main_a impediment_n of_o our_o salvation_n which_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v not_o evil_a and_o yet_o through_o a_o affection_n to_o they_o not_o well_o govern_v they_o hinder_v man_n salvation_n to_o buy_v a_o farm_n to_o try_v ox_n and_o to_o marry_v a_o wife_n be_v no_o sin_n but_o to_o advance_v and_o prefer_v they_o before_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v incredible_a stupidity_n and_o blindness_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v find_v many_o christian_n in_o every_o place_n who_o do_v affect_v and_o seek_v after_o these_o temporality_n with_o a_o wonderful_a thirst_n and_o hunger_n consume_v whole_a day_n and_o night_n in_o pursue_v of_o honour_n which_o be_v note_v in_o buy_v of_o the_o farm_n and_o of_o lucre_n or_o gayne_n which_o be_v signify_v in_o manure_v of_o ground_n or_o draw_v of_o ox_n and_o of_o pleasure_n or_o voluptuousness_n which_o it_o take_v through_o new_a marriage_n yea_o they_o be_v so_o absort_v in_o the_o depth_n of_o these_o earthly_a matter_n as_o that_o they_o remain_v whole_o forgetful_a of_o the_o eternal_a and_o most_o great_a reward_n which_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o they_o that_o love_v he_o neither_o be_v many_o man_n content_a to_o buy_v farm_n to_o prove_v their_o ox_n to_o marry_v wife_n but_o that_o they_o may_v the_o further_o depart_v from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n they_o fear_v not_o to_o invade_v other_o man_n farm_n to_o steal_v ox_n and_o to_o maintain_v concubine_n and_o prostitute_a woman_n never_o ever_o think_v much_o less_o mature_o consider_v what_o hurt_n and_o damage_n it_o be_v for_o such_o trifle_n to_o suffer_v the_o loss_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n certain_o if_o god_n do_v not_o promise_v unto_o we_o be_v but_o poor_a worm_n of_o the_o earth_n a_o supper_n of_o infinite_a sweetness_n in_o heaven_n but_o only_o do_v promise_v the_o crumb_n fall_v from_o that_o table_n or_o the_o refuse_n of_o the_o meat_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o profitable_a for_o we_o to_o contemn_v all_o temporal_a thing_n whatsoever_o that_o so_o we_o may_v feed_v upon_o those_o offall_v what_o madness_n then_o be_v it_o to_o advance_v small_a decay_a and_o fleet_a pleasure_n above_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n himself_o which_o abound_v with_o all_o sempiternal_a good_n and_o at_o the_o which_o we_o shall_v sit_v down_o in_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n with_o the_o holy_a angel_n and_o with_o he_o who_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o angel_n to_o proceed_v after_o our_o lord_n have_v show_v what_o may_v hinder_v our_o entrance_n unto_o this_o great_a supper_n he_o therpon_o adjoin_v certain_a remedy_n to_o remove_v those_o let_n and_o impediment_n for_o thus_o he_o go_v forward_o in_o his_o parable_n then_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n be_v angry_a say_v to_o his_o servant_n go_v forth_o quick_o into_o the_o street_n and_o lane_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o poor_a and_o feeble_a and_o blind_a and_o lame_a bring_v in_o hither_o because_o rich_a man_n be_v occupy_v in_o buy_v of_o farm_n of_o ox_n and_o in_o marriage_n refuse_v to_o come_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o this_o great_a lord_n he_o call_v in_o the_o poor_a weak_a and_o lame_a who_o neither_o have_v money_n to_o buy_v farm_n or_o ox_n neither_o can_v easy_o get_v wyve_n as_o want_v mean_n to_o maintain_v they_o these_o man_n therefore_o as_o free_a from_o all_o entanglement_n wherewith_o the_o other_o be_v ensnare_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o great_a supper_n who_o may_v deserve_o congratulate_v their_o own_o fortune_n and_o state_n that_o god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v poor_a weak_a blind_a and_o lame_a many_o here_o in_o this_o life_n do_v much_o complain_v that_o they_o ar●_n bear_v poor_a or_o that_o they_o be_v often_o sick_a or_o deprive_v of_o sight_n or_o be_v lame_a in_o their_o limb_n and_o for_o these_o imperfection_n they_o hold_v themselves_o most_o infortunate_a and_o miserable_a not_o know_v what_o good_a god_n do_v provide_v for_o they_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v even_o for_o this_o very_a cause_n which_o many_o man_n repute_v as_o a_o infelicity_n but_o if_o they_o do_v know_v god_n sweet_a proceed_n herein_o they_o will_v doubtless_o exult_v and_o reioy●e_v therefore_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o complain_v of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n but_o in_o all_o thing_n to_o love_v he_o with_o due_a thanks_o who_o have_v a_o care_n and_o vigilancy_n over_o we_o and_o ever_o to_o rest_v quiet_a and_o repose_v in_o his_o good_a will_n &_o pleasure_n but_o how_o true_a soever_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o a_o literal_a sense_n yet_o in_o this_o parable_n those_o be_v say_v proper_o to_o be_v poor_a who_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n not_o in_o riches_n and_o those_o weak_a not_o in_o strength_n but_o in_o confidence_n and_o trust_n of_o themselves_o those_o blind_a not_o in_o their_o bodily_a eye_n but_o in_o subtlety_n and_o craft_n those_o lame_a not_o in_o their_o foot_n but_o in_o their_o affection_n i_o will_v speak_v more_o plain_o the_o poor_a who_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v those_o who_o hear_v the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 6._o desire_v not_o to_o be_v rich_a and_o if_o they_o have_v riches_n they_o have_v they_o not_o to_o heap_v up_o together_o and_o so_o to_o conserve_v they_o neither_o to_o wait_v and_o dissipate_v they_o in_o vanity_n but_o to_o perform_v and_o exercise_v that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v of_o by_o the_o mouth_n
to_o the_o three_o heaven_n concer-a_a house_n the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o thus_o speak_v in_o my_o father_n house_n there_o be_v many_o mansion_n joan._n 14._o touch_v a_o city_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n you_o be_v come_v to_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n hebr._n 12._o to_o conclude_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n our_o lord_n himself_o thus_o in_o s._n matthew_n 5._o beatipauperes_fw-la spiritu_fw-la etc._n etc._n bless_a be_v the_o poor_a in_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o no_o other_o name_n through_o out_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v more_o frequent_o use_v than_o this_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o place_n of_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n be_v call_v a_o paradise_n because_o heaven_n be_v a_o most_o pleasant_a place_n abound_v withal_o spiritual_a delicacy_n but_o because_o some_o man_n may_v conjecture_v that_o a_o paradise_n be_v but_o a_o small_a garden_n place_v in_o some_o one_o corner_n of_o a_o house_n capable_a to_o receive_v but_o few_o man_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v adjoine_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n &_o name_n of_o house_n because_o a_o regal_a and_o princely_a house_n be_v accustom_v to_o be_v a_o great_a palace_n in_o which_o beside_o the_o garden_n or_o orchard_n there_o be_v certaaine_o open_a hall_n or_o place_n of_o disport_n diverse_a chamber_n and_o room_n of_o repose_n and_o retirement_n beside_o many_o other_o of_o different_a sort_n now_o see_v a_o house_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v great_a can_v contain_v many_o man_n therefore_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v that_o they_o be_v but_o few_o who_o belong_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o scripture_n do_v annexe_v the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n which_o usual_o comprehend_v in_o itself_o many_o orchard_n and_o many_o palace_n of_o pleasure_n but_o see_v s._n john_n write_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n 7._o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o bless_a vidi_n turbam_fw-la magnam_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o see_v a_o great_a multitude_n which_o no_o man_n can_v number_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o city_n which_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o innumerable_a multitude_n therefore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n use_v the_o name_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n than_o which_o place_n no_o other_o throughout_o the_o whole_a university_n of_o thing_n create_v be_v more_o capacious_a but_o now_o again_o to_o show_v other_o reason_n in_o warrant_n of_o the_o former_a four_o different_a appellation_n or_o name_n because_o in_o a_o most_o ample_a kingdom_n there_o be_v many_o man_n who_o never_o see_v nor_o know_v the_o name_n of_o d_o vers_fw-la inhabitant_n of_o the_o same_o kingdom_n nor_o know_v not_o whether_o such_o man_n be_v or_o have_v a_o existence_n or_o be_v and_o also_o in_o that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o all_o the_o bless_a do_v see_v and_o know_v one_o another_o and_z as_o friend_n conjoin_v in_o a_o strait_a bond_n of_o love_n do_v familiar_o converse_v among_o themselves_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n as_o not_o be_v content_a with_o the_o name_n of_o a_o kingdom_n add_v the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n give_v we_o to_o understand_v thereby_o that_o all_o those_o who_o do_v dwell_v in_o that_o though_o most_o vast_a kingdom_n be_v true_o citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o be_v so_o conjoin_v in_o familiarity_n among_o themselves_o as_o the_o citizen_n of_o one_o small_a city_n be_v accustom_v to_o be_v and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v further_o instruct_v that_o all_o those_o happy_a man_n be_v not_o only_o the_o citizen_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o also_o the_o domestic_a friend_n of_o god_n yea_o the_o son_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n who_o have_v call_v it_o a_o city_n call_v it_o also_o a_o house_n to_o conclude_v in_o that_o all_o the_o bless_a in_o heaven_n do_v enjoy_v the_o same_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n in_o heaven_n therefore_o be_v that_o place_n entitle_v by_o the_o name_n of_o paradise_n thus_o these_o four_o word_n to_o wit_n a_o kingdom_n a_o city_n a_o house_n a_o paradise_n do_v signify_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o paradise_n here_o mention_v be_v so_o spacious_a and_o large_a as_o that_o it_o may_v be_v true_o call_v a_o house_n a_o city_n a_o kingdom_n therefore_o i_o have_v here_o determine_v to_o commit_v to_o print_v whatsoever_o god_n sha●l_v vouchsafe_v to_o suggest_v and_o minister_v to_o i_o by_o way_n of_o meditation_n in_o the_o secret_a closet_n of_o my_o soul_n of_o this_o most_o happy_a place_n and_o this_o first_o un-the_a name_n of_o a_o kingdom_n next_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n then_o of_o a_o house_n and_o last_o of_o paradise_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o discourse_n i_o will_v subjoine_v six_o other_o name_n not_o of_o place_n but_o of_o thing_n out_o of_o the_o parable_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o wit_n a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o a_o field_n a_o precious_a pearl_n or_o margarite_n the_o daily_a penny_n the_o joy_n of_o our_o lord_n a_o great_a supper_n and_o a_o regal_a or_o princely_a marriage_n as_o also_o two_o other_o name_n out_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v a_o price_n or_o reward_n and_o a_o crown_n so_o in_o all_o there_o shall_v be_v twelve_o distinct_a consideration_n by_o the_o which_o the_o eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n of_o the_o eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o the_o name_n or_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o amplitude_n or_o largeness_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n chap._n i._n of_o what_o worth_n and_o dignity_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v may_v partly_o be_v know_v in_o that_o our_o heavenly_a master_n do_v begin_v his_o sermon_n to_o his_o auditory_a from_o those_o word_n of_o matth._n 4._o de_fw-fr penance_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o further_o in_o that_o he_o make_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o subject_n of_o most_o of_o his_o parable_n say_v matth._n 13.18.20.21.22.25_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v resemble_v etc._n etc._n and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n in_o the_o time_n of_o those_o forty_o day_n before_o his_o ascension_n appear_v to_o his_o disciple_n he_o discourse_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n as_o s._n luke_n do_v witness_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o we_o see_v the_o beginning_n progress_n and_o consummation_n or_o end_n of_o the_o speech_n of_o christ_n be_v ever_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o we_o in_o this_o place_n will_v not_o undertake_v to_o dispute_v of_o all_o point_n touch_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o concern_v the_o place_n and_o state_n of_o the_o bless_a saint_n and_o first_o we_o will_v explicate_v why_o the_o place_n and_o state_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v name_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n well_o then_o the_o habitation_n of_o the_o saint_n for_o several_a respect_n be_v entitle_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n first_o because_o heaven_n be_v a_o most_o ample_a region_n and_o far_o more_o ample_a and_o large_a than_o the_o narrow_a limit_n even_o of_o man_n thought_n can_v comprehend_v the_o whole_a earth_n which_o be_v but_o a_o prick_n or_o point_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o high_a heaven_n do_v contain_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a kingdom_n as_o that_o with_o difficulty_n they_o can_v be_v number_v of_o what_o immensenesse_n and_o huge_a vastness_n than_o shall_v that_o kingdom_n be_v which_o be_v but_o one_o and_o yet_o disperse_v and_o spread_v throughout_o the_o whole_a latitude_n and_o breadth_n of_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n do_v not_o only_o contain_v through_o its_o own_o capacity_n the_o celestial_a region_n but_o also_o all_o this_o university_n ●nd_v general_a state_n of_o thing_n for_o that_o supercelestial_a region_n as_o i_o may_v term_v it_o which_o be_v proper_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o first_o province_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o which_o the_o chief_a prince_n all_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v reside_v and_o dwell_v the_o s●cond_o province_n may_v be_v call_v eternal_a in_o which_o the_o star_n be_v seat_v which_o star_n though_o they_o be_v inanimate_a nevertheless_o they_o be_v so_o obedient_a and_o serviceable_a to_o the_o will_n &_o beck_n of_o their_o creator_n as_o that_o they_o may_v be_v well_o say_v to_o have_v life_n and_o sense_n according_a to_o that_o of_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la come_v and_o let_v we_o adore_v the_o king_n to_o who_o all_o thing_n do●_n live_v the_o three_o province_n be_v that_o of_o the_o air_n wherein_o the_o wind_n
lie_v open_a to_o all_o man_n that_o the_o get_v thereof_o may_v be_v have_v without_o suffer_v of_o blow_n or_o shee_v of_o blood_n and_o that_o it_o incomparable_o surpass_v all_o earthly_a kingdom_n if_o i_o shall_v say_v to_o one_o contemn_v a_o whole_a kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v obtain_v a_o little_a field_n or_o vineyard_n thou_o will_v deserve_o either_o laugh_n or_o wonder_n at_o i_o but_o when_o i_o say_v or_o rather_o god_n say_v contemn_v a_o small_a earthly_a kingdom_n and_o seek_v after_o ●_o most_o precious_a great_a and_o eternal_a kingdom_n the_o which_o thou_o may_v purchase_v if_o thou_o will_v through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o will_v never_o be_v want_v why_o do_v thou_o not_o raise_v up_o thy_o spirit_n both_o for_o the_o desire_v and_o gain_v of_o it_o doubtless_o i_o can_v conceive_v what_o may_v be_v answer_v heerto_o but_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o a_o earthly_a kingdom_n as_o be_v present_a to_o the_o eye_n may_v be_v as_o it_o be_v touch_v with_o the_o hand_n whereas_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n can_v be_v see_v can_v be_v touch_v nor_o scarce_o apprehend_v by_o faith_n this_o indeed_o be_v true_a notwithstanding_o if_o a_o man_n will_v serious_o and_o intense_o consider_v what_o force_n and_o efficacy_n the_o verity_n antiquity_n sincerity_n and_o gravity_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n enjoy_v and_o how_o perspicuous_o and_o clear_o the_o say_v divine_a write_v speak_v of_o this_o point_n and_o how_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n during_o already_o so_o many_o age_n not_o only_o with_o miracle_n but_o even_o with_o blood_n have_v confirm_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_v divine_a writing_n doubtless_o he_o can_v but_o burst_v out_o with_o the_o prophet_n and_o say_v thy_o testimony_n o_o lord_n be_v make_v over_o much_o credible_a psal_n 98._o wherefore_o we_o may_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o obscurity_n and_o darkness_n of_o faith_n which_o withdraw_v we_o from_o seek_v after_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o it_o be_v because_o our_o mind_n be_v whole_o absorb_v in_o exterior_a thing_n and_o burden_v with_o the_o weight_n of_o custom_n &_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o take_v sufficient_a time_n and_o leisure_n to_o meditate_v and_o ponder_v of_o such_o thing_n as_o conduce_v to_o our_o soul_n good_a neither_o do_v we_o according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o our_o lord_n mat._n 6._o enter_v into_o the_o closet_n of_o our_o hart_n and_o the_o door_n be_v shut_v we_o do_v not_o even_o besiege_v god_n with_o our_o feruerous_a prayer_n that_o in_o so_o great_a and_o weighty_a ●_o business_n he_o will_v assist_v us._n certainty_n ●f_n once_o lay_v a_o side_n all_o care_n of_o inferior_a and_o lesser_a matter_n we_o will_v serious_o and_o with_o due_a preparation_n take_v into_o our_o thought_n what_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v and_o how_o easy_o &_o certain_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v and_o what_o infinite_a disparity_n there_o be_v between_o thing_n everlasting_a and_o temporal_a between_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n and_o trifle_n and_o brief_o between_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o earthly_a kingdom_n without_o doubt_n so_o great_a a_o contempt_n of_o temporal_a throne_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n will_v be_v engender_v in_o we_o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a so_o ardent_a a_o desire_n of_o celestial_a affair_n will_v so_o inflame_v we_o as_o that_o we_o shall_v without_o difficulty_n yea_o with_o much_o ease_n and_o facility_n bestow_v all_o our_o labour_n and_o diligence_n in_o pursuit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o which_o as_o to_o one_o true_a and_o last_o end_n we_o be_v make_v by_o our_o creator_n the_o first_o pathway_n or_o tract_n lead_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n chap._n vii_o here_o we_o be_v now_o to_o know_v what_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v do_v that_o we_o may_v arrive_v to_o the_o most_o desire_a and_o most_o happy_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o to_o know_v this_o be_v no_o great_a difficulty_n since_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n himself_o to_o teach_v we_o the_o same_o do_v descend_v to_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v become_v our_o master_n and_o captain_n set_v before_o we_o four_o chief_a and_o most_o safe_a way_n thereunto_o of_o these_o the_o first_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o word_n of_o mat._n 6._o seek_v first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n &_o the_o justice_n of_o he_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o you_o moral_a doctrine_n begin_v from_o the_o end_n our_o end_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v we_o if_o so_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o that_o path_n wherein_o our_o captain_n walk_v also_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v as_o it_o be_v ●he_v scope_n or_o mark_v whereat_o we_o ●re_n to_o ●evell_v if_o so_o we_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v ●he_v reward_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n for_o as_o cassianus_n right_o teach_v col_fw-fr ●_o cap._n 2._o the_o end_n be_v one_o thing_n the_o scope_n a_o other_o thing_n the_o scope_n be_v a_o sign_n or_o mark_n unto_o which_o arrow_n ●re_n direct_v in_o shoot_v but_o the_o end_n be_v the_o reward_n which_o those_o do_v take_v who_o have_v shoot_v more_o near_o the_o scope_n or_o mark_v in_o like_o manner_n the_o scope_n of_o our_o action_n propound_v by_o god_n be_v ●ustice_n the_o reward_n of_o those_o who_o obtain_v this_o mark_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o justice_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o external_a observation_n of_o ●he_n precept_n neither_o it_o be_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o philosopher_n which_o do_v ●ot_n transcend_v the_o light_n of_o natura●l_a ●eason_n corrupt_v by_o sinne._n but_o it_o ●s_v the_o evangelicall_a justice_n which_o tea●heth_v to_o love_n god_n with_o all_o our_o hart_n withal_o our_o soul_n withal_o our_o strength_n and_o to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n though_o our_o enemy_n as_o ourself_o of_o this_o scope_n &_o end_n s._n paul_n rom._n 6._o speak_v say_v you_o have_v your_o faith_n unto_o justification_n but_o the_o end_n life_n everlasting_a this_o be_v that_o whereunto_o the_o apostle_n admonish_v we_o that_o the_o first_o of_o all_o thing_n we_o do_v seek_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o justice_n thereof_o that_o be_v that_o our_o earnest_n and_o chief_a thought_n be_v not_o carry_v away_o to_o any_o temporal_a good_n but_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o gain_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o to_o a_o most_o diligent_a and_o inviolable_a keep_n of_o that_o first_o and_o great_a precept_n the_o which_o precept_n be_v neglect_v and_o break_v by_o most_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v say_v matt._n 22._o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v for_o most_o man_n do_v so_o live_v and_o comport_v themselves_o in_o their_o manner_n as_o that_o their_o further_a thought_n be_v to_o seek_v how_o they_o may_v come_v to_o this_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n neither_o be_v there_o anything_o which_o they_o more_o could_o look_v after_o than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n &_o the_o justice_n thereof_o as_o if_o our_o lord_n have_v say_v first_o seek_v after_o the_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n and_o its_o injustice_n and_o deceit_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o you_o but_o that_o celestial_a kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o that_o baseness_n and_o mean_a esteem_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v thrust_v upon_o those_o who_o do_v prefer_v all_o other_o thing_n before_o the_o obtain_n thereof_o therefore_o he_o that_o will_v learn_v a_o certain_a and_o easy_a way_n for_o gain_v the_o justice_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o lead_v direct_o to_o the_o kingdom_n itself_o let_v that_o man_n hear_v our_o foresaid_a master_n and_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n thus_o affirm_v matt._n 5._o bless_a be_v they_o that_o hunger_n &_o thirst_n after_o justice_n for_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o fill_n but_o what_o o_o lord_n be_v the_o facility_n of_o find_v justice_n so_o great_a with_o thou_o as_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a only_a to_o be_v hungry_a or_o thirsty_a of_o it_o certain_o all_o poor_a man_n will_v be_v bless_v if_o only_o by_o thirst_v after_o money_n they_o shall_v be_v so_o replenish_v therewith_o as_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o be_v satiate_v with_o any_o other_o thing_n but_o the_o matter_n here_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v hungry_a and_o thirst_n after_o money_n and_o other_o thing_n after_o justice_n for_o they_o who_o suffer_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o justice_n that_o be_v who_o so_o greedy_o and_o anxious_o seek_v after_o justice_n as_o man_n do_v who_o thirst_n after_o water_n and_o be_v hungry_a after_o meat_n those_o man_n certain_o
confidence_n not_o in_o thy_o own_o strength_n neither_o in_o thy_o own_o wisdom_n but_o in_o the_o omnipotency_n and_o infinite_a charity_n of_o god_n which_o two_o point_n if_o thou_o do_v perform_v crooked_a thing_n shall_v become_v straight_o and_o rough_a way_n plain_a esa_n 40._o and_o thou_o shall_v serve_v our_o lord_n with_o ineffable_a comfort_n joy_n and_o exultation_n and_o thou_o shall_v sing_v in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o lord_n because_o the_o glory_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v great_a psal_n 137._o of_o the_o eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n the_o second_o book_n of_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n i._n gloriosa_fw-la dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-la te_fw-la civitas_fw-la dei_fw-la glorious_a thing_n be_v say_v of_o thou_o o_o city_n of_o god_n psal_n 86._o in_o regard_n hereof_o i_o much_o covet_v to_o behold_v thy_o beauty_n by_o way_n of_o meditation_n though_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o glass_n in_o a_o dark_a manner_n and_o among_o other_o thing_n this_o first_o occur_v to_o be_v consider_v why_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v also_o call_v the_o city_n of_o god_n one_o chief_a reason_n thereof_o seem_v to_o be_v because_o as_o it_o be_v call_v a_o kingdom_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o amplitude_n &_o largne_n so_o it_o also_o deserve_v to_o be_v call_v a_o city_n with_o reference_n to_o its_o splenstour_n and_o beauty_n when_o one_o hear_v any_o speech_n of_o a_o most_o large_a and_o vast_a kingdom_n he_o may_v easy_o think_v that_o in_o the_o same_o there_o be_v many_o solitary_a and_o unpleasing_a place_n leave_v only_o for_o beast_n to_o inhabit_v many_o hill_n uncultivate_v many_o vale_n overgrow_v with_o wood_n many_o rock_n inaccessible_a way_n uneven_n and_o unhaunted_a and_o final_o most_o deep_a precipice_n and_o the_o like_a but_o because_o all_o this_o infelicity_n of_o place_n ought_v to_o be_v most_o distant_a and_o remote_a from_o the_o felicity_n of_o saint_n therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v instruct_v we_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a to_o a_o most_o fair_a and_o adorn_v city_n and_o though_o this_o kingdom_n be_v of_o a_o most_o immense_a and_o almost_o infinite_a circuit_n yet_o that_o it_o do_v even_o shine_v and_o appear_v fair_a as_o any_o city_n that_o be_v most_o populous_a and_o most_o rich_a be_v accustom_v to_o do_v for_o in_o the_o chief_a and_o great_a city_n there_o be_v to_o be_v see_v most_o sumptuous_a and_o adorn_v temple_n or_o church_n most_o stately_a and_o haughty_a palace_n most_o pleasant_a orchard_n most_o large_a place_n for_o resort_n of_o the_o citizen_n most_o replenish_a house_n with_o people_n beside_o goodly_a fountain_n column_n pyramiss_n theater_n tower_n and_o shop_n fraught_v with_o all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o use_n of_o man._n what_o have_v be_v the_o splendour_n of_o italy_n if_o want_v the_o barren_a apennine_n it_o all_o shall_v shine_v not_o as_o rome_n as_o this_o day_n but_o as_o it_o be_v under_o augustus_n caesar_n who_o turn_v its_o mudwal_n into_o edifice_n of_o marble_n and_o how_o beautiful_a have_v syria_n be_v long_o since_o if_o all_o of_o it_o have_v be_v like_o to_o jerusalem_n before_o jerusalem_n have_v come_v to_o desolation_n by_o the_o roman_n for_o josephus_n describe_v the_o magnificence_n of_o it_o with_o all_o wonder_n so_o as_o the_o prophet_n may_v not_o without_o just_a cause_n say_v thereof_o gloriosa_fw-la dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la de_fw-la te_fw-la civitas_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o yet_o even_o then_o it_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o that_o height_n of_o eminency_n to_o the_o which_o after_o david_n and_o solomon_n herod_n the_o great_a have_v advance_v it_o of_o what_o lustre_n have_v chaldaea_n and_o all_o assyria_n and_o mesopotamia_n or_o rather_o all_o the_o east_n be_v if_o the_o city_n of_o babylon_n can_v have_v contain_v all_o the_o part_n thereof_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o its_o own_o wall_n for_o both_o pliny_n and_o strabo_n describe_v that_o city_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o that_o the_o largeness_n and_o beauty_n thereof_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v incredible_a and_o therefore_o the_o city_n of_o babylon_n be_v worthy_o range_v among_o the_o seven_o miracle_n of_o the_o world_n but_o now_o to_o parallel_v thing_n together_o what_o kind_n of_o city_n then_o shall_v that_o heavenly_a city_n that_o supernal_a jerusalem_n be_v which_o possess_v or_o contain_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n i_o mean_v that_o city_n which_o make_v that_o great_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n so_o to_o cast_v forth_o its_o splendour_n and_o light_n as_o if_o it_o all_o be_v but_o one_o most_o fair_a and_o glorious_a city_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v no_o vacancy_n of_o place_n no_o deformity_n nothing_o vile_a or_o base_a doubtless_o the_o supernal_a city_n be_v of_o such_o nature_n as_o that_o no_o man_n can_v serious_o and_o with_o due_a attention_n meditate_v thereof_o but_o that_o he_o must_v instant_o burn_v with_o desire_n of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n and_o no_o man_n can_v trul●_n burn_v therewith_o but_o that_o abandon_v all_o thing_n he_o must_v thirst_v after_o it_o and_o never_o cease_v till_o he_o have_v find_v it_o observe_v what_o tobias_n the_o young_a rejoice_v in_o spirit_n speak_v of_o this_o city_n c._n 13._o thou_o shall_v shine_v with_o a_o glorious_a light_n and_o all_o the_o coast_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v adore_v thou_o etc._n etc._n the_o gate_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v build_v of_o saphire_n and_o emerald_n and_o all_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o precious_a stone_n with_o white_a and_o clean_a stone_n shall_v all_o the_o street_n thereof_o be_v pave_v and_o in_o the_o street_n alleluia_n shall_v be_v sing_v and_o s._n john_n accord_v to_o toby_n herein_o say_v apoc._n 21._o and_o the_o build_n of_o the_o wall_n thereof_o be_v of_o jaspar-stone_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o city_n be_v pure_a gold_n as_o it_o be_v transparent_a glass_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o city_n be_v adorn_v with_o all_o precious_a stone_n and_o the_o several_a gate_n thereof_o be_v of_o several_a margarite_n and_o the_o street_n of_o the_o city_n pure_a gold_n now_o here_o we_o be_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n shall_v be_v see_v as_o adorn_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n such_o as_o be_v here_o upon_o the_o earth_n ●ut_v these_o thing_n be_v so_o deliver_v in_o holy_a writ_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o heavenly_a city_n be_v so_o far_o more_o noble_a than_o any_o earthly_a city_n by_o how_o much_o gold_n be_v better_a than_o mud_n or_o dirt_n margarite_n then_o common_a stone_n star_n than_o light_n the_o sun_n than_o a_o torch_n or_o lamp_n heaven_n then_o the_o earth_n and_o final_o god_n the_o immortal_a workman_n than_o any_o mortal_a architect_n but_o because_o we_o be_v hereafter_o more_o full_o to_o discourse_v of_o the_o beauty_n of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n i_o will_v here_o forbear_v further_a speech_n thereof_o of_o the_o concord_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n ii_o another_o reason_n why_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n may_v be_v call_v the_o city_n of_o god_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o that_o a_o kingdom_n be_v accustom_v to_o comprehend_v within_o it_o almost_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o person_n be_v among_o themselves_o distinct_a in_o language_n manner_n and_o law_n of_o which_o number_n though_o all_o of_o one_o kingdom_n many_o do_v never_o see_v one_o another_o much_o less_o ever_o contract_v any_o mutual_a friendship_n or_o familiarity_n now_o a_o city_n contain_v only_o those_o which_o speak_v one_o and_o the_o same_o tongue_n who_o be_v of_o like_a manner_n and_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o same_o custom_n or_o law_n thus_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v call_v both_o a_o kingdom_n and_o a_o city_n because_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n be_v so_o many_o as_o that_o they_o can_v hardly_o be_v number_v and_o as_o s._n john_n say_v apoc_n 7._o they_o be_v gather_v together_o of_o several_a nation_n of_o several_a tribe_n and_o people_n and_o of_o several_a tongue_n as_o also_o of_o angel_n archangel_n principality_n power_n virtue_n domination_n throne_n cherubim_n and_o seraphim_n who_o exceed_v man_n in_o number_n of_o which_o every_o one_o of_o they_o do_v differ_v from_o another_o not_o in_o country_n people_n language_n but_o in_o diversity_n of_o nature_n i_o mean_v in_o a_o specifical_a difference_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v all_o true_a citizen_n all_o of_o unanimous_a consent_n and_o be_v govern_v only_o by_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v
that_o they_o be_v all_o one_o hart_n and_o one_o spirit_n and_o since_o charity_n can_v brook_v hatred_n envy_n contention_n discord_n and_o the_o like_a therefore_o all_o such_o dissension_n &_o jar_n be_v most_o remote_a from_o that_o holy_a city_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o only_o charity_n there_o reign_v be_v attend_v on_o with_o ●ustice_n peace_n &_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o thing_n there_o be_v a_o great_a wa●re_n in_o heaven_n between_o s._n michael_n the_o archangel_n and_o the_o dragon_n but_o s._n michael_n and_o the_o other_o angel_n who_o range_v themselves_o with_o he_o and_o remain_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o perform_v their_o loyalty_n and_o obedience_n to_o their_o lord_n obtain_v victory_n over_o the_o dragon_n and_o his_o associate_n who_o breathe_v nothing_o but_o pride_n revolt_v from_o their_o common_a lord_n and_o sovereign_n and_o the_o great_a dragon_n be_v cast_v forth_o the_o old_a serpent_n wh●ch_n be_v call_v the_o devil_n and_o satan_n which_o seduce_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o he_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n apoc._n 12._o from_o which_o time_n the_o holy_a city_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n do_v border_v itself_o within_o the_o limit_n of_o peace_n neither_o have_v any_o warlike_a trumpet_n be_v hard_o therein_o neither_o shall_v hereafter_o be_v hear_v and_o this_o for_o a●l_a eternity_n now_o to_o reflect_v upon_o what_o be_v above_o say_v what_o can_v be_v repute_v more_o please_a or_o happy_a than_o this_o city_n such_o man_n who_o by_o their_o own_o experience_n have_v try_v the_o evil_n of_o war_n robbery_n slaughter_n rapine_n devastation_n of_o place_n by_o lie_n sacrilege_n and_o the_o like_a may_v easy_o and_o true_o preach_v of_o the_o great_a pleasure_n and_o sweetness_n of_o peace_n but_o pass_v over_o public_a war_n and_o hostility_n who_o have_v not_o make_v trial_n in_o his_o own_o city_n yea_o in_o his_o own_o house_n how_o distasteful_a and_o unpleasing_a it_o be_v daily_o to_o converse_v with_o man_n of_o a_o ireful_a and_o froward_a disposition_n who_o do_v interpret_v every_o thing_n in_o the_o worst_a ●art_n depart_v from_o the_o wicked_a and_o evil_a shall_v fall_v from_o thou_o say_v ecclesiasticus_fw-la c._n 7._o but_o whither_o can_v we_o fly_v where_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v encounter_v with_o wicked_a man_n and_o if_o every_o place_n do_v swarm_n with_o such_o man_n then_o doubtless_o must_v many_o evil_n discontent_n and_o unquietnes_n attend_v upon_o we_o during_o this_o our_o time_n of_o exile_n give_v ear_n to_o what_o the_o foresay_a ecclesiasticus_fw-la pronounce_v of_o a_o evil_a wife_n it_o shall_v be_v more_o pleasant_a to_o abide_v with_o a_o lion_n and_o dragon_n then_o to_o dwell_v with_o a_o wicked_a woman_n c._n 25._o and_o if_o she_o who_o be_v the_o fellow_n and_o companion_n of_o man_n l●fe_n be_v through_o wickedness_n turn_v into_o a_o lion_n or_o dragon_n to_o how_o great_a angour_n and_o infelicity_n be_v many_o man_n expose_v all_o that_o will_v live_v godly_a in_o christ_n jesus_n faith_n the_o apostle_n ●_o tim._n 3_o shall_v suffer_v persecution_n therefore_o how_o unhappy_a be_v the_o city_n of_o this_o world_n in_o which_o a_o man_n of_o necessity_n must_v be_v affront_v with_o adversary_n and_o wage_a war_n for_o if_o thou_o will_v live_v pious_o and_o godly_a thou_o shall_v suffer_v persecution_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n and_o if_o thou_o will_v give_v the_o bridle_n to_o all_o impiety_n thereby_o to_o decline_v and_o avoid_v persecution_n of_o man_n thou_o shall_v then_o fall_v into_o the_o wrath_n and_o indignation_n of_o that_o most_o high_a and_o powerful_a king_n who_o shall_v persecute_v and_o punish_v thou_o both_o live_n and_o dead_a who_o anger_n no_o man_n can_v resist_v most_o unfortunate_a therefore_o and_o calamitous_a be_v that_o country_n in_o which_o no_o man_n can_v escape_v war_n no_o man_n can_v fly_v from_o persecution_n no_o man_n can_v find_v true_a peace_n what_o then_o remain_v but_o that_o even_o from_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o heart_n we_o do_v prosecute_v with_o a_o i_o love_v and_o praise_v the_o heavenly_a city_n wherein_o no_o persecution_n can_v be_v find_v no_o war_n broil_n or_o discord_n can_v take_v place_n of_o the_o liberty_n or_o freedom_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n iii_o the_o three_o reason_n why_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n may_v be_v call_v a_o city_n be_v in_o that_o a_o kingdom_n have_v a_o monarchical_a form_n o_o government_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v oppose_v to_o liberty_n whereas_o all_o the_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n be_v free_a and_o our_o mother_n which_o be_v the_o supreme_a jerusalem_n be_v also_o free_a as_o s._n paul_n witness_v to_o the_o galathian_o c._n 4._o which_o bless_a apostle_n do_v well_o know_v what_o he_o do_v speak_v since_o he_o be_v once_o take_v up_o in_o spirit_n into_o the_o three_o heaven_n be_v thereby_o acquaint_v with_o the_o manner_n and_o law_n of_o that_o city_n therefore_o see_v a_o kingdom_n do_v seem_v to_o include_v servitude_n and_o a_o city_n liberty_n that_o kingdom_n may_v well_o be_v call_v a_o city_n in_o wh●ch_n all_o who_o serve_v the_o king_n be_v free_a now_o among_o the_o holy_a inhabitant_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v not_o one_o only_a liberty_n but_o a_o liberty_n of_o several_a kind_n for_o first_o all_o the_o citizen_n of_o heaven_n be_v free_a from_o the_o bondage_n of_o sin_n see_v the_o first_o liberty_n which_o be_v in_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n be_v to_o have_v power_n not_o to_o sin_n whereas_o the_o second_o liberty_n in_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n be_v far_o great_a to_o wit_n not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o sin_n as_o s._n austin_n teach_v lib._n the_o correp_n &_o gra_fw-mi c._n 11._o another_o kind_n of_o liberty_n consist_v in_o be_v free_a from_o death_n be_v like_a to_o the_o former_a liberty_n for_o adam_n be_v so_o free_a in_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n as_o that_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n not_o to_o die_v and_o the_o son_n of_o adam_n be_v so_o free_a in_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n as_o that_o they_o can_v die_v neither_o must_v it_o seem_v strange_a that_o we_o p●ace_v liberty_n in_o that_o which_o consist_v in_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v see_v not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o sin_n and_o not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o die_v imply_v a_o eminency_n of_o freedom_n from_o the_o captivity_n of_o sin_n and_o thraldom_n of_o mortality_n for_o who_o have_v not_o power_n to_o sin_n be_v not_o only_o free_a from_o sin_n but_o also_o be_v so_o far_o from_o the_o bondage_n thereof_o as_o that_o he_o remain_v secure_a that_o sin_n shall_v never_o have_v any_o sovereignty_n over_o he_o in_o like_a sort_n he_o who_o can_v die_v remain_v not_o only_o free_a from_o death_n but_o be_v so_o far_o distant_a from_o death_n as_o that_o he_o be_v ascertain_v that_o death_n shall_v never_o make_v any_o assault_n towards_o he_o which_o liberty_n only_a god_n through_o his_o own_o nature_n enjoy_v according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 6._o who_o alone_o have_v immortality_n for_o although_o the_o angel_n and_o rational_a soul_n be_v say_v to_o be_v natural_o immortal_a because_o they_o have_v no_o principle_n or_o cause_n of_o corruption_n in_o their_o ●ature_n nevertheless_o god_n who_o first_o create_v they_o can_v at_o his_o pleasure_n reduce_v they_o to_o nothing_o but_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o bless_a saint_n be_v most_o secure_a that_o they_o shall_v for_o never_o after_o sin_n nor_o die_v and_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n most_o free_a from_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n or_o death_n which_o privilege_n be_v a_o most_o honourable_a participation_n of_o the_o divine_a liberty_n of_o god_n the_o three_o kind_n of_o liberty_n be_v to_o be_v free_a from_o necessity_n and_o this_o liberty_n be_v also_o of_o several_a sort_n for_o now_o mortal_a man_n be_v force_v through_o a_o certain_a constraint_n of_o necessity_n to_o eat_v to_o drink_v to_o sleep_v to_o labour_v sometime_o to_o stand_v another_o time_n to_o walk_v or_o to_o lie_v down_o and_o repose_v themselves_o but_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n stand_v subject_a and_o thra_fw-la l_o to_o no_o such_o necessity_n but_o be_v free_v from_o all_o corporal_a necessitude_n and_o this_o be_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n now_o of_o what_o dignity_n this_o liberty_n be_v first_o poor_a man_n second_o spiritual_a man_n last_o rich_a man_n &_o such_o as_o be_v lover_n of_o this_o world_n do_v full_o testify_v man_n oppress_v with_o penury_n and_o want_n in_o the_o high_a degree_n what_o indefatigable_a pain_n d●_n they_o undergo_v thereby_o to_o provide_v for_o themselves_o and_o they_o meat_n
drink_n clothes_n and_o other_o necessary_n and_o how_o much_o will_v they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v oblige_v to_o such_o man_n who_o will_v disburden_v and_o free_v they_o from_o all_o such_o servitude_n of_o want_n &_o necessity_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o many_o of_o they_o practice_v theft_n and_o other_o prohibit_v course_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o their_o life_n for_o they_o say_v with_o that_o wicked_a steward_n in_o the_o gospel_n luc._n 16._o to_o dig_v i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o beg_v i_o be_o ashamed_a i_o know_v what_o i_o will_v do_v to_o wit_n i_o will_v deceive_v my_o lord_n i_o mean_v i_o will_v free_v myself_o by_o theft_n and_o rapine_n from_o this_o burden_n of_o want_n and_o necessity_n but_o the_o close_a or_o end_n of_o this_o be_v to_o fall_v into_o a_o necessity_n far_o more_o grievous_a that_o be_v into_o the_o servitude_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o devil_n man_n great_a enemy_n to_o come_v to_o holy_a man_n who_o greed_o thirst_v after_o heaven_n these_o man_n account_v it_o a_o great_a burden_n to_o have_v the_o care_n of_o provide_v all_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o body_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o so_o many_o thing_n and_o spend_v much_o time_n therein_o which_o they_o will_v bestow_v willing_o upon_o more_o noble_a employment_n eusebius_n l._n 2._o hist._n cap._n 16_o record_v out_o of_o philo_n that_o the_o first_o christian_n of_o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n live_v under_o the_o governm_fw-la nt_v of_o s._n mark_v the_o evangelist_n be_v so_o whole_o devote_a to_o their_o accustom_a heavenly_a meditation_n as_o that_o they_o never_o refresh_v their_o body_n with_o meat_n till_o after_o the_o sun_n be_v set_v that_o so_o they_o may_v spend_v the_o whole_a day_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o night_n in_o such_o celestial_a study_n so_o allot_v but_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o night_n for_o their_o body_n ease_n and_o cherishment_n yea_o he_o relate_v that_o diverse_a for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o whole_a day_n other_o for_o six_o day_n together_o abstayn_v from_o meat_n in_o like_a sort_n joannes_n cassianus_n in_o his_o collation_n and_o theodoret_n in_o his_o history_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o same_o long_a abstinence_n from_o meat_n be_v much_o practise_v by_o many_o holy_a ●rmites_n therefore_o from_o hence_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o servitude_n of_o corporal_a necessity_n be_v a_o great_a clog_n to_o these_o man_n they_o complain_v and_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 7._o unhappy_a man_n that_o i_o be_o who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n now_o to_o descend_v to_o the_o citizen_n of_o this_o world_n and_o particular_o to_o rich_a man_n who_o breathe_v nothing_o but_o temporal_a gain_n and_o pleasure_n to_o these_o this_o servitude_n of_o necessity_n be_v not_o ungrateful_a nevertheless_o if_o they_o weigh_v the_o matter_n in_o a_o even_a balance_n they_o will_v censure_v it_o to_o be_v most_o grievous_a meat_n drink_n and_o sleep_n be_v please_v to_o they_o but_o if_o these_o benefit_n of_o nature_n be_v take_v in_o a_o superfluous_a degree_n they_o fill_v the_o body_n w●th_v a_o troublesome_a overcharge_n of_o bad_a humour_n &_o disease_n which_o after_o to_o expel_v they_o be_v force_v to_o drink_v diverse_a better_a potion_n and_o to_o suffer_v no_o sleight_n pain_n again_o such_o man_n be_v violent_o constrain_v either_o to_o profess_v open_a enmity_n to_o god_n and_o thereupon_o to_o undergo_v his_o most_o dreadful_a wrath_n and_o indignation_n or_o else_o most_o courageous_o to_o wage_v war_n against_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o temperance_n and_o sobriety_n which_o kind_n of_o fight_v be_v accustom_a to_o be_v most_o laborious_a and_o most_o dangerous_a therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o both_o the_o poor_a the_o rich_a the_o godly_a and_o the_o wicked_a be_v disburden_v and_o free_v of_o a_o most_o fastidious_a wearisome_a necessity_n and_o vassilage_n when_o they_o be_v free_v from_o the_o servitude_n of_o this_o miserable_a and_o manifold_a necessity_n the_o four_o kind_n of_o liberty_n consist_v in_o be_v free_a and_o unoblige_v to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o precept_n since_o the_o law_n be_v institute_v not_o for_o the_o just_a but_o for_o the_o injust_a as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v now_o there_o be_v none_o more_o just_a than_o the_o bless_a for_o they_o be_v confirm_v and_o corroborate_v in_o justice_n neither_o can_v they_o possible_o become_v injust_a true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o threaten_a and_o press_v law_n be_v not_o ordain_v for_o just_a man_n live_v in_o this_o world_n since_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n they_o be_v obedient_a to_o the_o law_n nevertheless_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o the_o law_n do_v oblige_v and_o direct_v even_o they_o to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o law_n command_v and_o to_o fly_v that_o which_o the_o law_n prohibit_v but_o the_o just_a who_o do_v enjoy_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o no_o law_n for_o they_o contemplate_v all_o justice_n in_o the_o word_n and_o as_o be_v strenghtn_v and_o fortify_v in_o perfect_a charity_n they_o can_v deflect_v or_o decline_v from_o the_o will_n of_o god_n this_o liberty_n indeed_o be_v of_o great_a moment_n which_o discharge_v one_o of_o all_o solicitude_n and_o anxiety_n and_o it_o be_v whole_o opposite_a to_o that_o captivity_n &_o thraldom_n of_o those_o unfortunate_a soul_n who_o have_v their_o hand_n and_o foot_n bind_v shall_v be_v cast_v into_o exterior_a darkness_n and_o into_o a_o furnace_n of_o fire_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a either_o to_o tolerate_v or_o to_o avoid_v those_o torment_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v not_o any_o man_n but_o of_o necessity_n he_o must_v undergo_v one_o of_o these_o two_o contrary_a lot_n or_o fortune_n notwithstanding_o man_n be_v so_o blind_v with_o the_o empty_a smoke_n of_o present_a honour_n and_o the_o dust_n of_o terrene_a benefit_n as_o that_o they_o make_v no_o cogitation_n no_o introversion_n of_o judgement_n upon_o these_o matter_n until_o a_o sudden_a overthrow_n and_o calamity_n do_v rush_n upon_o they_o and_o thus_o do_v irrevocable_a punishment_n open_v their_o eye_n which_o sin_n have_v before_o shut_v and_o close_v up_o of_o the_o situation_n and_o form_n or_o structure_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n iu._n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o heavenly_a city_n &_o let_v we_o attentive_o conconsider_v the_o situation_n form_n foundation_n gate_n wall_n and_o street_n thereof_o and_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o situation_n this_o city_n be_v place_v in_o holy_a mountain_n for_o thus_o we_o read_v psal_n 86._o the_o foundation_n thereof_o be_v in_o holy_a mountain_n with_o who_o agree_v s._n john_n apoc._n 21._o and_o he_o take_v i_o up_o in_o spirit_n to_o a_o mountain_n great_a and_o high_a and_o show_v i_o the_o holy_a city_n now_o city_n be_v seat_v upon_o hill_n or_o mountain_n both_o for_o healthfulness_n of_o the_o air_n as_o also_o for_o strength_n but_o what_o mountain_n be_v high_a than_o heaven_n and_o which_o be_v that_o mountain_n that_o be_v exalt_v above_o all_o mountain_n if_o not_o the_o heaven_n of_o heaven_n of_o which_o david_n thus_o sing_v ps●l_n 113._o caelum_fw-la caeli_fw-la domino_fw-la this_o be_v that_o mountain_n to_o the_o which_o the_o say_a prophet_n covet_v to_o aspire_v when_o he_o say_v again_o psal_n 23._o who_o shall_v afcend_v into_o the_o mount_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o who_o shall_v stand_v in_o his_o holy_a place_n and_o from_o whence_o he_o implore_v &_o expect_a aid_n say_v psal_n 120._o i_o have_v lift_v up_o my_o ●yes_n unto_o the_o mountain_n from_o whence_o help_n shall_v come_v to_o i_o therefore_o from_o all_o this_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n be_v most_o sublime_a &_o high_a and_o transcend_v al●_n thing_n which_o may_v in_o any_o sort_n disturb_v the_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o say_a city_n for_o it_o be_v erect_v to_o a_o great_a height_n than_o any_o dust_n mire_n thorn_n the_o bite_n of_o venomous_a beast_n of_o the_o earth_n can_v reach_v unto_o it_o be_v more_o high_a than_o any_o vapour_n darkness_n of_o the_o air_n hail_n thunder_n or_o lightning_n can_v terrify_v or_o annoy_v brief_o it_o be_v more_o high_a than_o those_o unclean_a and_o ravenous_a bird_n which_o the_o apostle_n eph._n 6._o call_v spiritualia_fw-la nequitiae_fw-la in_o coelestibus_fw-la can_v ascend_v unto_o he_o mean_v spiritual_a wickedness_n in_o heavenly_a place_n the_o form_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n be_v four_o square_n for_o thus_o speak_v s._n john_n apoc._n 2d_o and_o the_o city_n be_v situate_v quadrangle_n wise_a and_o the_o length_n thereof_o be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o breadth_n this_o signify_v no_o other_o thing_n
word_n like_v to_o pure_a glass_n that_o be_v transparent_a and_o of_o a_o white_a colour_n like_v unto_o crystal_n from_o this_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o whole_a city_n whether_o you_o respect_v the_o gate_n the_o wall_n or_o the_o street_n be_v most_o precious_a which_o have_v not_o within_o it_o any_o ordure_n or_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v base_a abject_a sordid_a or_o of_o small_a continuance_n and_o withal_o the_o city_n be_v say_v to_o be_v white_a and_o plain_o lie_v open_a to_o the_o eye_n for_o therein_o be_v nothing_o cover_v all_o the_o citizen_n than_o see_v all_o thing_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o suspicion_n or_o any_o imposture_n or_o deceit_n and_o perhaps_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o s._n john_n subnect_v in_o the_o same_o place_n this_o short_a passage_n an●_n the_o gate_n thereof_o shall_v not_o be_v shut_v because_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o darkness_n no_o thief_n no_o enemy_n for_o fear_n of_o who_o the_o gate_n shall_v be_v shut_v neither_o be_v this_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n who_o celebrate_v the_o praise_n of_o his_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n in_o these_o word_n psal_n 147._o o_o jerusalem_n praise_v our_o lord_n because_o he_o have_v strengthen_v the_o lock_n of_o thy_o gate_n since_o both_o the_o prophet_n &_o the_o euangalist_n do_v insinuate_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o enemy_n or_o thief_n who_o can_v threaten_v danger_n to_o this_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n for_o the_o prophet_n by_o the_o gate_n be_v ever_o shut_v sign_n fy_v that_o god_n holy_a protection_n will_v not_o suffer_v the_o enemy_n at_o any_o time_n to_o invade_v or_o enter_v into_o that_o city_n so_o much_o belove_v by_o he_o the_o evangelist_n by_o the_o gate_n be_v open_a sheweth_z that_o that_o city_n be_v so_o secure_a and_o free_a from_o all_o hostile_a incursion_n as_o that_o it_o need_v n_o it_o to_o shut_v its_o gate_n much_o less_o to_o keep_v any_o watch_n or_o centinall_n but_o let_v as_o proceed_v and_o show_v what_o the_o gate_n the_o wall_n and_o the_o street_n of_o his_o city_n do_v import_n the_o gate_n by_o their_o standsng_n ever_o open_a declare_v that_o now_o after_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n entrance_n into_o this_o city_n of_o god_n and_o angel_n be_v give_v to_o man_n since_o christ_n himself_o after_o he_o have_v suffer_v death_n do_v open_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o the_o faithful_a neither_o be_v there_o one_o only_a port_n or_o gate_n but_o twelve_o by_o which_o the_o faithful_a may_v enter_v into_o this_o city_n for_o thus_o s._n john_n speak_v on_o the_o east_n side_n three_o gate_n on_o the_o north_n three_o and_o on_o the_o south_n three_o and_o on_o the_o west_n three_o since_o not_o only_o the_o jew_n as_o themselves_o dream_v do_v enter_v into_o that_o city_n but_o man_n even_o from_o ●ll_o the_o most_o remote_a and_o disco_v part_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n yea_o so_o few_o jew_n do_v enter_v there_o into_o as_o with_o reference_n to_o man_n of_o other_o nation_n they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v almost_o none_o at_o all_o for_o thus_o do_v our_o lord_n speak_v to_o the_o centurion_n prophesy_v of_o they_o matth._n 8._o i_o have_v not_o find_v so_o great_a faith_n in_o israel_n and_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o many_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o the_o west_n and_o shall_v sit_v down_o with_o abraham_n and_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o the_o child_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v be_v cast_v out_o into_o exterior_a darkness_n in_o like_a sort_n in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o vine_n our_o lord_n thus_o say_v matt_n 21._o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o a_o nation_n yield_v fruit_n thereof_o and_o the_o same_o point_n be_v inculcate_v most_o clear_o in_o s_n luke_n when_o you_o shall_v see_v abraham_n &_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n &_o you_o to_o be_v thrust_v out_o and_o there_o shall_v come_v from_o the_o east_n and_o the_o west_n and_o the_o north_n and_o the_o south_n &_o shall_v sit_v down_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n now_o there_o be_v say_v to_o be_v three_o gate_n from_o every_o part_n of_o the_o world_n &_o so_o in_o number_n twelve_o because_o entrance_n shall_v be_v give_v not_o only_o to_o those_o come_n from_o the_o east_n the_o south_n the_o west_n and_o the_o north_n but_o also_o from_o the_o beginning_n or_o first_o entrance_n of_o the_o east_n from_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o east_n and_o from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o east_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o three_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n except_o this_o other_o construction_n follow_v of_o the_o foresay_a number_n of_o the_o gate_n may_v be_v perhaps_o more_o pertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n to_o wit_n that_o three_o gate_n be_v assign_v to_o several_a part_n of_o the_o heavenly_a city_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o the_o three_o most_o necessary_a virtue_n since_o they_o all_o from_o all_o the_o four_o part_n of_o the_o world_n do_v enter_v into_o this_o heavenly_a city_n who_o be_v baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n have_v persevere_v to_o their_o last_o end_n in_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o wall_n and_o street_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n vi_o to_o proceed_v the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n signify_v nothing_o else_o than_o god_n holy_a protection_n &_o custody_n which_o one_o thing_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o preserve_v this_o city_n without_o any_o watch_n force_n or_o fortress_n i_o will_v be_v to_o it_o say_v god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o zachary_n a_o wall_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o and_o i_o will_v be_v in_o glory_n in_o the_o midst_n thereof_o zach._n 2._o a_o most_o wonderful_a promise_n he_o say_v i_o will_v be_v a_o wall_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o that_o i_o may_v hinder_v the_o entrance_n of_o enemy_n and_o i_o will_v be_v a_o glory_n in_o the_o midst_n thereof_o that_o i_o may_v enlighten_v the_o citizen_n as_o if_o he_o will_v say_v fire_n burn_v and_o shine_v therefore_o i_o will_v consume_v the_o enemy_n with_o fire_n &_o and_z will_v illuminate_v and_o comfort_v the_o citizen_n so_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o wall_n of_o fire_n round_o about_o and_o a_o light_n of_o glory_n in_o the_o midst_n which_o very_a point_n s._n john_n a_o little_a after_o do_v explicate_v when_o he_o say_v apoc._n 21._o and_o the_o city_n need_v not_o sun_n nor_o moon_n to_o shine_v in_o it_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n have_v illuminate_v it_o and_o the_o lamb_n be_v the_o lamp_n thereof_o the_o clarity_n and_o brightness_n of_o god_n as_o a_o sun_n do_v enlighten_v the_o mind_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n as_o a_o lamp_n do_v illuminate_v the_o body_n of_o the_o bless_a now_o christ_n be_v here_o call_v a_o lamp_n not_o as_o if_o this_o lamp_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o night_n time_n but_o be_v so_o call_v in_o comparison_n of_o the_o divinity_n for_o if_o the_o face_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v shine_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n as_o our_o lord_n himself_o testify_v matth._n 13._o then_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v the_o face_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o a_o lamp_n but_o as_o a_o chief_a sun_n enlighten_v the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n john_n do_v there_o subjoine_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o night_n in_o that_o city_n here_o yet_o remain_v the_o street_n of_o this_o city_n to_o be_v discourse_v of_o this_o street_n comprehend_v the_o whole_a space_n wh●ch_n be_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o wall_n and_o this_o street_n be_v the_o common_a habitation_n of_o all_o the_o celestial_a citizen_n the_o which_o be_v all_o of_o pure_a gold_n that_o be_v of_o a_o fiery_a and_o bright_a charity_n which_o shall_v contain_v all_o those_o citizen_n and_o through_o force_n of_o which_o one_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n shall_v even_o live_v in_o another_o through_o the_o virtue_n of_o pure_a love._n neither_o only_o shall_v one_o live_v in_o another_o but_o all_o of_o they_o shall_v live_v in_o god_n and_o god_n in_o they_o all_o for_o who_o remain_v in_o charity_n remain_v in_o god_n &_o god_n in_o he_o 1._o joan._n 4._o the_o which_o point_n that_o it_o may_v be_v affect_v christ_n our_o lord_n ask_v of_o his_o father_n in_o that_o prayer_n which_o ready_a to_o go_v to_o his_o passion_n he_o make_v in_o the_o hear_n of_o all_o of_o his_o apostle_n say_v joan._n 17._o not_o for_o they_o alone_o do_v i_o pray_v but_o for_o they_o also_o
who_o by_o their_o word_n shall_v believe_v in_o i_o that_o they_o all_o may_v be_v one_o as_o thou_o father_n in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o thou_o that_o they_o also_o in_o we_o may_v be_v one_o o_o most_o bless_a city_n which_o be_v seat_v upon_o a_o most_o high_a mountain_n do_v enjoy_v a_o most_o pure_a air_n which_o be_v found_v upon_o a_o rock_n as_o be_v support_v with_o eternal_a stability_n and_o firmness_n who_o gate_n do_v shine_v like_o margarite_n and_o ever_o stand_v open_a for_o holy_a soul_n to_o enter_v into_o who_o wall_n be_v god_n encompass_v thou_o about_o with_o his_o vigilancy_n and_o protection_n and_o as_o a_o precious_a ja●per-stone_n do_v adorn_v thou_o who_o street_n be_v charity_n more_o bright_a and_o glorious_a than_o all_o gold_n more_o white_a than_o any_o crystal_n which_o make_v all_o the_o inhabitant_n to_o be_v of_o one_o heart_n of_o one_o mind_n replenish_n they_o with_o a_o inutterable_a joy_n and_o place_v they_o in_o a_o interminable_a and_o everlasting_a tranquillity_n and_o peace_n concupiscit_fw-la &_o deficit_fw-la anima_fw-la mea_fw-la my_o soul_n covet_v and_o even_o faint_v unto_o thy_o street_n psal_n 9●_n what_o be_v more_o grateful_a and_o more_o wish_a for_o by_o our_o labour_a and_o lament_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o wicked_a nation_n among_o false_a brethren_n and_o in_o that_o world_n which_o be_v whole_o place_v in_o malignity_n &_o wickedness_n then_o even_o in_o all_o haste_n to_o fly_v to_o that_o place_n in_o which_o only_a charity_n reign_v when_o shall_v i_o come_v and_o appear_v before_o the_o face_n of_o god_n psal_n 41._o what_o great_a consolation_n and_o comfort_n can_v be_v to_o a_o s●ule_n love_v our_o lord_n then_o to_o see_v his_o belove_a and_o to_o be_v see_v of_o his_o belove_a and_o through_o a_o inward_a and_o most_o sweet_a connexion_n reciprocal_o to_o dwell_v the_o one_o in_o the_o other_o it_o be_v insufferable_a boldness_n o_o holy_a city_n that_o dust_n and_o ash_n shall_v dare_v to_o aspire_v to_o thy_o palace_n and_o it_o be_v great_a boldness_n that_o a_o vile_a and_o deject_a soul_n shall_v dare_v to_o approach_v to_o the_o fruition_n of_o his_o creator_n but_o he_o will_v excuse_v and_o plead_v for_o this_o boldness_n who_o give_v it_o when_o he_o pray_v to_o his_o father_n that_o we_o all_o may_v be_v one_o and_o that_o as_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o the_o father_n so_o we_o may_v be_v but_o one_o in_o one_o another_o of_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n chap._n vii_o we_o be_v here_o further_o to_o enlarge_v our_o discourse_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n in_o show_v the_o temple_n therein_o to_o praise_n god_n &_o the_o meat_n &_o drink_v which_o there_o be_v to_o be_v eat_v and_o drunken_a for_o as_o for_o clothing_n the_o inhabitant_n need_v not_o to_o be_v solicitous_a for_o if_o adam_n and_o eve_n need_v not_o any_o clothing_n in_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n much_o less_o shall_v the_o saint_n in_o the_o celestial_a pararadise_n need_v any_o such_o who_o shall_v be_v all_o clothe_v with_o splendour_n and_o light_n as_o with_o a_o vestment_n now_o concern_v meat_n &_o drink_v adam_n and_o eve_n can_v not_o want_v they_o neither_o do_v the_o angel_n themselves_o want_v they_o according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o angel_n raphael_n i_o use_v a_o invisible_a meat_n &_o drink_v which_o can_v be_v see_v of_o man_n tob._n 12._o and_o first_o touch_v the_o temple_n s._n john_n thus_o speak_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n 21._o and_o temple_n i_o see_v none_o therein_o for_o our_o lord_n god_n omnipotent_a be_v the_o temple_n thereof_o and_o the_o lamb_n that_o s._n john_n do_v not_o see_v any_o temple_n in_o the_o city_n may_v not_o seem_v strange_a since_o temple_n be_v erect_v in_o the_o militant_a church_n for_o four_o end_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v preach_v in_o they_o to_o the_o faithful_a that_o the_o sacrament_n and_o sacrifice_n may_v be_v celebrate_v in_o they_o that_o public_a prayer_n may_v be_v in_o they_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n and_o final_o that_o due_a praise_n with_o sing_v &_o joy_n may_v be_v perform_v to_o he_o now_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v cease_v in_o heaven_n see_v there_o the_o increated_a word_n himself_o shall_v manifest_o speak_v to_o all_o and_o according_a to_o the_o preach_n of_o jeremy_n the_o prophet_n cap._n 31._o man_n shall_v no_o more_o teach_v his_o neighbour_n or_o his_o brother_n say_v know_v our_o lord_n for_o all_o shall_v know_v i_o from_o the_o least_o to_o the_o great_a sacrament_n in_o like_a manner_n and_o sacrifice_n shall_v not_o be_v necessary_a in_o that_o city_n since_o neither_o sin_n shall_v be_v there_o expiate_v neither_o shall_v sign_n be_v there_o require_v where_o thing_n signify_v shall_v manifest_o appear_v prayer_n and_o laudes_fw-la to_o god_n be_v here_o upon_o earth_n perform_v in_o church_n and_o temple_n dedicate_v unto_o god_n because_o himself_o have_v promise_v that_o in_o such_o sacred_a place_n his_o eye_n shall_v be_v open_a &_o ear_n attent_a for_o thus_o he_o speak_v to_o solomon_n paral._n 7._o my_o eye_n shall_v be_v open_a and_o my_o ear_n erect_v to_o his_o prayer_n that_o shall_v pray_v in_o this_o place_n but_o now_o see_v in_o the_o celestial_a city_n god_n will_v be_v open_o see_v and_o hear_v of_o all_o man_n therefore_o not_o any_o temple_n seem_v to_o be_v necessary_a in_o that_o place_n hence_o than_o we_o may_v easy_o gather_v why_o s._n john_n say_v and_o i_o see_v no_o temple_n in_o the_o city_n but_o h●er_v it_o may_v be_v demand_v why_o s._n john_n subjoin_v these_o word_n the_o god_n omnipotent_a be_v the_o temple_n thereof_o and_o the_o lamb_n for_o if_o no_o temple_n be_v require_v in_o that_o city_n why_o then_o be_v god_n himself_o say_v to_o be_v the_o temple_n thereof_o and_o not_o only_o the_o temple_n but_o also_o the_o lamb_n or_o what_o explication_n can_v it_o have_v to_o say_v that_o god_n and_o the_o lamb_n shall_v be_v call_v temple_n in_o heaven_n or_o to_o what_o use_n shall_v this_o temple_n be_v in_o heaven_n in_o answer_v heerto_o we_o be_v to_o recurre_v to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n where_o one_o text_n or_o sentence_n do_v comment_n and_o explain_v another_o and_o the_o more_o dark_a and_o obscure_a passage_n receave_v its_o illustration_n from_o that_o which_o be_v more_o perspicuous_a and_o clear_a well_o then_o we_o thus_o read_v in_o the_o 90._o psalm_n he_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o help_n of_o the_o high_a shall_v ab●d●_n in_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o god_n of_o heave●_n 〈…〉_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o which_o word_n be_v this_o who_o by_o a_o firm_a confidence_n &_o hope_n be_v join_v with_o god_n he_o as_o it_o be_v make_v to_o himself_o a_o house_n in_o god_n in_o the_o which_o he_o may_v secure_o live_v as_o be_v exempt_a and_o free_a from_o all_o evil_a the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o praise_n and_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o he_o that_o through_o a_o inward_a reverence_n be_v conjoin_v with_o god_n do_v in_o like_a sort_n build_v to_o himself_o a_o place_n of_o habitation_n in_o god_n the_o which_o he_o inhabitate_v in_o that_o sort_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v may_v therein_o pray_v and_o offer_v up_o his_o praise_n unto_o god_n so_o here_o we_o say_v that_o our_o lord_n the_o omniporent_a god_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a city_n because_o all_o those_o holy_a citizen_n most_o intense_o and_o with_o a_o strong_a bent_n of_o fervour_n meditate_v on_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n and_o so_o by_o this_o mean_v join_v to_o he_o by_o a_o inward_a reverence_n do_v dwell_v in_o he_o and_o exhibit_v to_o he_o due_a praise_n and_o when_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o they_o be_v hear_v with_o a_o most_o willing_a and_o ready_a care_n in_o like_o manner_n when_o they_o serious_o contemplate_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n who_o as_o a_o innocent_a lamb_n deliver_v himself_o up_o in_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n 〈…〉_o odour_n of_o sweetness_n they_o be_v firm_o unite_v by_o love_n and_o dwell_v in_o he_o as_o in_o a_o temple_n do_v power_n out_o their_o prayer_n and_o impetration_n for_o we_o and_o do_v doubtless_o find_v the_o eye_n of_o god_n open_a and_o his_o ear_n attentive_a that_o they_o may_v obtain_v in_o our_o behalf_n any_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o pray_v but_o if_o those_o bless_a citizen_n be_v accustom_v to_o dwell_v in_o god_n &_o in_o christ_n as_o in_o a_o temple_n thereby_o to_o offer_v up_o their_o praise_n and_o prayer_n for_o we_o what_o be_v we_o poor_a man_n to_o do_v who_o neither_o see_v god_n nor_o christ_n o_o will_v to_o
worldly_a felicity_n can_v delight_v they_o and_o thus_o the_o only_a remembrance_n and_o expectation_n of_o future_a joy_n be_v sufficient_a in_o this_o their_o banishment_n to_o comfort_v they_o i_o hold_v it_o convenient_a to_o close_v up_o this_o book_n with_o the_o word_n of_o s._n austin_n that_o such_o who_o will_v not_o perhaps_o believe_v i_o may_v not_o doubt_v to_o give_v credit_n unto_o so_o great_a and_o worthy_a a_o man_n this_o father_n in_o these_o follow_a word_n do_v express_v which_o be_v the_o true_a note_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o city_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n thus_o he_o than_o write_v omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la terrena_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la &c_n &c_n all_o those_o who_o be_v whole_o immerse_v in_o earthly_a affair_n all_o who_o do_v prefer_v a_o temporary_a felicity_n before_o god_n all_o who_o seek_v after_o their_o own_o thing_n not_o after_o those_o of_o jesus_n christ_n do_v belong_v unto_o th●t_n one_o city_n which_o mystical_o be_v call_v babylon_n and_o which_o have_v the_o devil_n for_o their_o king_n but_o all_o such_o other_o who_o bend_v their_o labour_n to_o thing_n which_o be_v supernal_a and_o above_o who_o be_v even_o absorb_v in_o the_o meditation_n of_o celestial_a matter_n who_o live_v in_o this_o world_n with_o all_o solicitude_n and_o care_n that_o they_o do_v not_o offend_v god_n or_o sin_n who_o sin_v be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o confess_v their_o offence_n final_o who_o be_v humble_a meek_a holy_a just_a pious_a good_a all_o such_o i_o say_v belong_v to_o that_o one_o city_n which_o have_v christ_n for_o its_o king_n thus_o fa●re_v saint_n austin_n in_o explicat_fw-la psal_n 61._o of_o the_o eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o three_o book_n that_o all_o the_o bless_a be_v the_o domestic_n and_o son_n of_o god_n chap._n i._n i_o rejoice_v in_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v say_v to_o we_o we_o shall_v go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n say_v the_o royal_a prophet_n psal_n 121._o certain_o it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o ineffable_a cause_n of_o rejoice_v for_o a_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n after_o he_o have_v painful_o labour_v in_o the_o vineyard_n or_o have_v multiply_v his_o talent_n through_o negotiation_n and_o traffic_n or_o as_o first_o have_v gain_v the_o prize_n in_o the_o race_n or_o have_v deserve_v the_o crown_n in_o war_n &_o spiritual_a fight_n or_o have_v diligent_o feed_v the_o sheep_n commit_v to_o his_o charge_n courageous_o and_o valiant_o defend_v they_o from_o wolf_n for_o then_o such_o a_o man_n after_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o all_o these_o his_o labour_n do_v with_o all_o alacrity_n &_o cheerfulnes_n enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o his_o lord_n but_o let_v be_v first_o consider_v why_o that_o be_v call_v a_o house_n which_o a_o little_a before_o be_v call_v a_o city_n true_o we_o can_v think_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o appellation_n be_v that_o this_o house_n be_v straight_o or_o narrow_a and_o therefore_o do_v deserve_v the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n since_o indeed_o it_o be_v of_o that_o largeness_n as_o that_o in_o greatness_n it_o give_v not_o place_n to_o any_o city_n or_o kingdom_n give_v ear_n to_o what_o the_o prophet_n baruch_n cap._n 3._o by_o way_n of_o acclamaaion_n speak_v hereof_o o_o israel_n how_o great_a be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o how_o great_a be_v the_o place_n of_o his_o possession_n it_o be_v great_a and_o have_v no_o end_n why_o then_o may_v not_o so_o great_a a_o house_n just_o be_v call_v a_o city_n the_o first_o reason_n hereof_o then_o be_v because_o the_o bless_a though_o they_o be_v spread_v throughout_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o domestics_n and_o familiar_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o perhaps_o a_o man_n may_v imagine_v that_o if_o mention_n be_v make_v only_o of_o a_o kingdom_n or_o of_o a_o city_n that_o many_o may_v be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o city_n of_o god_n who_o do_v never_o see_v god_n nor_o be_v ever_o admit_v to_o speak_v or_o have_v any_o intercourse_n with_o god_n but_o only_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o other_o great_a saint_n but_o because_o the_o matter_n stand_v far_o otherwise_o and_o that_o all_o the_o sa●nts_n do_v ever_o see_v god_n do_v converse_v with_o he_o and_o do_v speak_v to_o he_o face_n to_o face_n whether_o they_o be_v the_o supreme_a seraphim_n and_o cherubim_n patriarch_n apostle_n prophet_n inferior_a angel_n and_o the_o low_a saint_n for_o even_o of_o our_o angel_n guardian_n who_o belong_v to_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o angel_n our_o lord_n thus_o say_v matth._n 18._o their_o angel_n in_o heaven_n always_o do_v see_v the_o face_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v heaven_n and_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n cap._n 4._o aver_v that_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o only_o the_o citizen_n of_o god_n but_o even_o the_o domestic_a friend_n of_o god_n therefore_o from_o hence_o i_o infer_v that_o the_o habitation_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o only_o call_v a_o city_n but_o also_o a_o house_n there_o be_v doubtless_o diverse_a mansion_n in_o heaven_n to_o wit_n great_a and_o lesser_a there_o be_v also_o several_a crown_n some_o more_o illustrious_a other_o not_o so_o illustrious_a according_a to_o the_o disparity_n and_o inequality_n of_o merit_n nevertheless_o all_o those_o citizen_n be_v bless_v and_o happy_a and_o be_v clean_a in_o hart_n and_o replenish_v with_o charity_n we_o may_v then_o from_o hence_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o saint_n who_o be_v not_o in_o that_o celestial_a house_n and_o who_o see_v not_o god_n and_o converse_v not_o with_o he_o as_o a_o domestical_a and_o familiar_a friend_n howsoever_o contrary_a heerto_o in_o other_o kingdom_n and_o city_n there_o be_v many_o who_o never_o see_v the_o king_n and_o most_o few_o they_o be_v to_o who_o he_o vouchsafe_v any_o speech_n or_o familiarity_n another_o reason_n why_o the_o city_n of_o god_n be_v call_v a_o house_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v in_o that_o in_o a_o city_n many_o do_v see_v the_o king_n and_o do_v speak_v to_o he_o yet_o all_o those_o be_v not_o the_o domestic_n son_n &_o heir_n of_o the_o king_n but_o only_o those_o who_o dwell_v in_o the_o king_n palace_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o king_n for_o such_o but_o now_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o in_o the_o city_n of_o god_n all_o the_o saint_n whether_o o●_n high_a or_o low_a degree_n be_v true_o the_o domesticke_n of_o god_n and_o brethren_n of_o christ_n &_o by_o reason_n hereof_o they_o be_v link_v together_o in_o the_o strait_a conjunction_n of_o fraternity_n or_o brotherhood_n so_o as_o the_o superior_n among_o they_o do_v not_o contemn_v their_o inferior_n neither_o with_o they_o be_v any_o contention_n or_o malignity_n for_o when_o our_o lord_n do_v teach_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la that_o chief_a prayer_n which_o be_v daily_o to_o be_v recite_v he_o in_o these_o word_n exclude_v not_o any_o man_n and_o when_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o shall_v say_v come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n possess_v you_o the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n the_o world_n matth._n 25._o he_o shall_v not_o except_v any_o out_o of_o this_o most_o comfortable_a invitation_n and_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v to_o the_o roman_n cap._n 8._o whosoever_o be_v govern_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n those_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o if_o son_n heir_n also_o heir_n true_o of_o god_n and_o coheires_n of_o christ_n he_o in_o these_o word_n shut_v out_o no_o man_n whether_o great_a or_o little_a so_o that_o he_o enjoy_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o will_v suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v stern_v and_o guide_v therewith_o which_o one_o point_n be_v doubtless_o common_a to_o all_o the_o regenerate_v in_o christ_n persevere_v in_o faith_n hope_n charity_n in_o like_a sort_n s._n peter_n 1._o pet._n 1._o promise_v to_o all_o the_o regenerate_v a_o incorruptible_a inheritance_n incontaminate_a and_o not_o decay_v be_v reserve_v in_o heaven_n to_o conclude_v s._n john_n without_o any_o exception_n thus_o preach_v to_o all_o the_o just_a see_v i_o pray_v what_o manner_n of_o charity_n the_o father_n have_v give_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v name_v and_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1._o joan_n 3_o from_o all_o this_o than_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o place_n of_o habitation_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v a_o house_n and_o not_o only_o a_o city_n or_o kingdom_n in_o which_o house_n all_o be_v domesticke_n son_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o great_a king_n and_o all_o of_o they_o be_v belove_v of_o god_n as_o son_n and_o of_o christ_n as_o brethren_n &_o that_o they_o may_v by_o good_a right_n say_v with_o the_o
prophet_n psal_n 132._o o_o how_o good_a and_o pleasant_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v for_o brethren_n to_o dwell_v in_o one_o for_o what_o great_a consolation_n and_o comfort_n can_v be_v imagine_v to_o a_o man_n then_o to_o converse_v with_o innumerable_a angel_n with_o man_n of_o all_o degree_n either_o superior_a equal_a and_o inferior_a to_o he_o and_o he_o to_o be_v belove_v of_o they_o all_o with_o most_o sincere_a affection_n as_o a_o brother_n to_o be_v use_v as_o a_o brother_n &_o embrace_v &_o entertain_v as_o a_o brother_n of_o the_o greatness_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n chap._n ii_o another_o reason_n for_o which_o the_o habitation_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v call_v a_o house_n may_v be_v take_v from_o that_o house_n especial_o the_o house_n of_o king_n have_v many_o ornament_n in_o their_o hals_n in_o their_o bedchamber_n in_o other_o withdraw_a room_n which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o city_n do_v want_v for_o who_o can_v recount_v the_o arras_n tapestry_n precious_a vestment_n plate_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n with_o the_o which_o the_o palace_n of_o king_n do_v glitter_v and_o shine_v neither_o be_v these_o interior_a ornament_n only_o of_o great_a worth_n and_o price_n but_o also_o the_o external_a and_o outward_a building_n itself_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v most_o admirable_a for_o the_o goodly_a marble_n stately_a pillar_n guild_a porch_n hang_v garden_n and_o such_o other_o delicacy_n which_o be_v over_o long_o to_o relate_v solomon_n king_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o he_o have_v build_v a_o temple_n to_o our_o lord_n with_o such_o cost_n and_o charge_n as_o be_v fit_v do_v make_v a_o palace_n for_o himself_o with_o such_o profuse_a cost_n as_o that_o he_o spend_v thirteen_o year_n in_o the_o build_n of_o it_o although_o he_o have_v many_o master_n and_o overseer_n of_o the_o whole_a fabric_n and_o have_v at_o hand_n with_o small_a labour_n great_a store_n of_o precious_a and_o curious_a marble_n and_o other_o stone_n and_o abundance_n of_o cedar-tree_n and_o not_o with_o less_o charge_n and_o magnificence_n do_v he_o erect_v a_o palace_n for_o his_o wife_n be_v the_o daughter_n of_o the_o king_n of_o egypt_n so_o sumptuous_a as_o it_o seem_v incredible_a therefore_o when_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n call_v that_o habitation_n the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o in_o other_o passage_n thereof_o it_o call_v the_o city_n of_o god_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o seem_v to_o insinuate_v that_o all_o that_o city_n and_o kingdom_n be_v as_o resplendent_a and_o glorious_a as_o any_o regal_a house_n or_o palace_n for_o as_o we_o have_v learn_v above_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n baruch_n the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v of_o that_o largeness_n and_o extension_n as_o that_o it_o be_v able_a to_o comprepend_v and_o contain_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o seem_v a_o little_a above_o a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o admiration_n if_o any_o whole_a kingdom_n shall_v appear_v to_o be_v of_o that_o splendour_n and_o fairness_n with_o which_o its_o chief_a city_n be_v adorn_v who_o then_o will_v not_o rest_v astonish_v ●●en_o he_o shall_v think_v that_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v style_v the_o house_n of_o god_n in_o that_o it_o be_v all_o stately_a all_o fair_a all_o precious_a as_o beseem_v the_o house_n of_o god_n to_o be_v therefore_o with_o good_a reason_n do_v the_o prophet_n david_n burst_v forth_o into_o those_o word_n psal_n 83._o my_o soul_n even_o covet_v and_o faint_v unto_o the_o court_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o who_o do_v not_o thirsting_o desire_v to_o see_v and_o possess_v a_o most_o noble_a kingly_a house_n which_o in_o its_o spacious_a greatness_n may_v equal_v any_o kingdom_n as_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o see_v and_o enjoy_v a_o most_o ample_a and_o large_a kingdom_n which_o for_o ornament_n splendour_n and_o magnificence_n may_v contend_v and_o compare_v with_o any_o princely_a house_n or_o palace_n neither_o will_v our_o soul_n only_o desire_v the_o fruition_n of_o such_o a_o house_n &_o such_o a_o kingdom_n if_o attentive_o it_o do_v think_v thereof_o and_o confident_o believe_v the_o same_o but_o it_o will_v be_v whole_o absorb_v and_o even_o faint_a and_o transgress_v its_o own_o limit_n through_o the_o incredible_a beauty_n and_o worth_a of_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n but_o alas_o we_o who_o lie_v upon_o the_o ground_n and_o be_v become_v thrall_n to_o temporality_n and_o earthly_a thing_n and_o do_v admire_v so_o much_o what_o we_o here_o see_v do_v little_o busy_v our_o thought_n with_o invisible_a matter_n we_o bear_v ourselves_o herein_o like_v to_o little_a child_n who_o never_o go_v out_o of_o their_o father_n house_n do_v so_o love_v that_o poor_a cottage_n as_o that_o they_o never_o once_o think_v of_o the_o palace_n of_o king_n in_o like_a sort_n we_o imitate_v herein_o the_o countrey-pesant_n who_o never_o see_v any_o city_n but_o be_v busy_v in_o till_v their_o ground_n and_o in_o repair_v their_o poor_a wooden_a and_o clayie_a house_n never_o think_v on_o palace_n tower_n theater_n honour_n dignity_n increase_v of_o silver_n chargeable_a banquet_n and_o the_o like_a and_o perhaps_o these_o rustic_n and_o child_n be_v more_o happy_a than_o many_o rich_a citizen_n and_o great_a prince_n because_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o this_o world_n much_o prize_v and_o high_o esteem_v be_v common_o attend_v on_o with_o more_o anxiety_n care_n and_o danger_n then_o with_o solid_a profit_n and_o dignity_n but_o the_o good_n which_o be_v in_o that_o heavenly_a house_n of_o our_o father_n be_v inestimable_a neither_o be_v they_o accompany_v with_o any_o solicitude_n discontent_n or_o peril_n but_o be_v exempt_v from_o all_o grief_n and_o molestation_n and_o this_o not_o for_o any_o short_a time_n but_o for_o all_o eternity_n therefore_o s._n paul_n who_o be_v neither_o a_o ch_z l_o nor_o a_o rustic_a and_o who_o well_o know_v the_o good_n and_o commodity_n of_o this_o world_n for_o he_o be_v a_o man_n most_o learned_a and_o converse_v with_o most_o wise_a man_n he_o also_o have_v be_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o have_v peruse_v and_o view_v the_o heavenly_a city_n as_o be_v rapt_v into_o the_o three_o heaven_n do_v thus_o speak_v of_o himself_o 2._o cor._n 4._o we_o not_o consider_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o which_o be_v not_o see_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v see_v be_v temporal_a but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o see_v be_v eternal_a and_o again_o phil._n 3._o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o according_a hereto_o he_o exhort_v we_o all_o colloss_n 3._o to_o seek_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o christ_n be_v sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o to_o mind_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o not_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v upon_o the_o earth_n of_o the_o dine_a chamber_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n chap._n iii_o another_o reason_n why_o that_o which_o be_v call_v ed_z a_o city_n and_o a_o kingdom_n be_v also_o call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n may_v be_v take_v from_o those_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n joan._n 14._o in_o my_o father_n house_n there_o be_v many_o mansion_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o in_o house_n there_o be_v chamber_n or_o partour_n to_o dine_v and_o sup_v in_o chamber_n also_o for_o man_n to_o take_v their_o repose_n and_o sleep_v halles_n and_o other_o spacious_a room_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o several_a action_n which_o out_o of_o the_o house_n be_v not_o accustom_v to_o be_v do_v but_o to_o begin_v with_o the_o great_a chamber_n as_o i_o may_v say_v or_o place_n of_o refection_n certain_o there_o be_v a_o place_n in_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o which_o all_o the_o saint_n be_v not_o only_o feed_v w●th_o princely_a viand_n but_o which_o be_v wonderful_a and_o scarce_o credible_a be_v it_o not_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v we_o so_o much_o where_o the_o king_n himself_o shall_v be_v gird_v and_o prepare_v to_o minister_v and_o serve_v the_o table_n for_o thus_o do_v our_o lord_n himself_o speak_v luc._n 12._o bless_a be_v those_o servant_n who_o when_o our_o lord_n come_v he_o shall_v find_v watch_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o he_o will_v gird_v himself_o and_o make_v they_o sit_v down_o and_o will_v come_v forth_o &_o minister_v unto_o they_o what_o kind_n of_o banquet_a house_n be_v this_o who_o ever_o hear_v of_o the_o like_a the_o lord_n stand_v the_o servant_n sit_v down_o the_o lord_n be_v gird_v that_o without_o any_o hindrance_n or_o let_v he_o may_v wait_v the_o servant_n be_v ungirded_a that_o so_o more_o free_o and_o commodious_o he_o may_v sit_v at_o table_n the_o lord_n go_v up_o and_o down_o to_o bring_v in_o and_o serve_v the_o meat_n the_o servant_n quiet_o feed_v upon_o those_o princely_a viand_n o_o if_o we_o
will_v serious_o take_v these_o thing_n into_o our_o consideration_n how_o loathe_v and_o cloy_a will_v all_o earthly_a pleasure_n seem_v unto_o we_o our_o lord_n do_v sometime_o gird_v himself_o with_o a_o towel_n that_o he_o may_v wash_v his_o disciple_n foot_n peter_n be_v affright_v at_o this_o sight_n and_o can_v not_o endure_v that_o his_o foot_n shall_v be_v wash_v by_o his_o lord_n but_o peter_n be_v just_o affright_v because_o he_o see_v therein_o majesty_n humble_v to_o the_o end_n to_o give_v a_o example_n of_o humility_n to_o his_o servant_n but_o in_o that_o celestial_a mansion_n thi●_n ministry_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v not_o of_o humiliation_n but_o of_o dignation_n or_o vouchsafe_n for_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o heaven_n shall_v not_o need_v any_o example_n of_o humility_n and_o submissivenes_n since_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v once_o touch_v with_o any_o pride_n of_o mind_n but_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v confirm_v and_o strengthen_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n therefore_o that_o gird_v of_o our_o lord_n do_v signify_v that_o he_o shall_v so_o free_o so_o ready_o and_o without_o any_o delay_n be_v present_a to_o every_o one_o of_o his_o servant_n and_o brethren_n even_o heap_v upon_o they_o all_o goodness_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o employment_n remain_v for_o he_o but_o only_o this_o o_o christian_n soul_n what_o thing_n be_v this_o will_v to_o god_n thou_o will_v once_o true_o conceive_v and_o understand_v what_o honour_n and_o true_a pleasure_n our_o lord_n will_v abundant_o bestow_v upon_o his_o servant_n for_o ever_o for_o certain_o if_o the_o thought_n and_o cogitation_n hereof_o do_v deep_o descend_v into_o thy_o hart_n thou_o as_o even_o boil_v in_o fervour_n of_o spirit_n will_v gird_v thy_o loin_n together_o and_o will_v prostrate_v thyself_o most_o cheerful_o in_o all_o obsequy_n and_o service_n before_o our_o lord_n and_o if_o any_o one_o of_o thy_o brethren_n oppress_v with_o want_n do_v meet_v thou_o thou_o will_v not_o only_o not_o disdain_v he_o with_o a_o scornful_a and_o side-cast_a eye_n but_o even_o dilate_v thy_o bowel_n of_o charity_n thou_o will_v with_o all_o willingness_n refresh_v and_o feed_v he_o sollace_v thyself_o with_o those_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n matth._n 25_o amen_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o as_o long_o as_o you_o do_v it_o to_o one_o of_o these_o my_o least_o brethren_n you_o do_v it_o to_o i_o now_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n shall_v make_v all_o his_o servant_n to_o sit_v down_o this_o show_v that_o they_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o house_n of_o his_o father_n may_v most_o safe_o and_o without_o any_o danger_n or_o solicitude_n repose_v and_o rest_v themselves_o and_o enjoy_v all_o those_o good_n with_o the_o which_o the_o house_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v replenish_v for_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v any_o after_o who_o either_o by_o force_n or_o by_o deceit_n shall_v deprive_v they_o of_o the_o fruition_n of_o the_o same_o to_o conclude_v where_o further_o it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n himself_o pass_v up_o and_o down_o shall_v minister_v and_o serve_v the_o meaning_n hereof_o be_v that_o the_o chief_a dainty_n and_o meat_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v in_o our_o lord_n himself_o for_o he_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n he_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o wisdom_n he_o be_v that_o hide_a manna_n which_o no_o man_n know_v but_o he_o who_o receave_v and_o taste_v of_o it_o therefore_o our_o lord_n pass_v through_o all_o he_o minister_v to_o all_o unspeakable_a viand_n and_o banquet_n the_o which_o do_v satiate_v without_o fastidiousnesse_n and_o fill_v without_o satiety_n of_o the_o bedchamber_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n chap._n four_o let_v we_o pass_v from_o the_o chamber_n of_o repast_n to_o the_o chamber_n of_o rest_n and_o repose_v david_n say_v the_o saint_n shall_v rejoice_v in_o glory_n they_o shall_v be_v joyful_a in_o their_o bed_n this_o bed_n be_v nothing_o else_o than_o a_o full_a and_o continual_a repose_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o of_o that_o sleep_n which_o the_o same_o prophet_n psal_n 126._o thus_o praise_v when_o he_o shall_v give_v sleep_n to_o his_o belove_a behold_v the_o inheritance_n of_o our_o lord_n of_o which_o point_n he_o thus_o speak_v psal_n 4._o in_o peace_n in_o the_o self_n same_o will_v i_o sleep_v and_o rest_n to_o conclude_v this_o be_v that_o rest_n of_o which_o it_o be_v thus_o say_v to_o s._n john_n apoc._n 14._o write_v bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o our_o lord_n for_o hence_o forth_o say_v the_o spirit_n they_o shall_v rest_v from_o their_o labour_n for_o their_o work_n follow_v they_o this_o be_v a_o great_a felicity_n and_o peculiar_a only_o to_o the_o bless_a for_o in_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o man_n whole_o disburden_v of_o all_o labour_n and_o even_o those_o man_n who_o seem_v most_o to_o be_v at_o rest_n and_o quietness_n to_o wit_n noble_a and_o rich_a man_n be_v common_o press_v with_o great_a anxiety_n and_o therefore_o not_o without_o cause_n do_v our_o lord_n compare_v riches_n unto_o thorn_n in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a matth._n 13._o and_o job_n say_v cap._n 7._o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v a_o warfare_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o one_o of_o his_o fellow_n conspire_o thus_o aver_v job._n 5._o a_o man_n be_v bear_v to_o labour_n and_o a_o bird_n to_o fly_v but_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la more_o copious_o do_v enlarge_v himself_o upon_o this_o point_n thus_o preach_v cap._n 4._o great_a travel_n be_v create_v to_o all_o man_n and_o a_o heavy_a yoke_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n from_o the_o day_n of_o their_o come_n forth_o of_o their_o mother_n womb_n until_o the_o day_n of_o their_o bury_n into_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o their_o cogitation_n and_o fear_n of_o the_o heart_n imagination_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o the_o day_n of_o their_o end_n from_o he_o that_o sit_v upon_o the_o glorious_a seat_n unto_o he_o that_o be_v humble_v in_o earth_n and_o ash_n from_o he_o that_o wear_v hyacinth_n and_o the_o diadem_n even_o to_o he_o that_o be_v cover_v with_o rude_a sackcloth_n thus_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la in_o which_o word_n he_o teach_v we_o that_o no_o mortal_a man_n be_v at_o any_o time_n make_v entire_o partaker_n of_o rest_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o man_n may_v understand_v of_o what_o worth_n and_o moment_n the_o sleep_n that_o be_v the_o sweet_a repose_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v respect_v therefore_o i_o will_v as_o it_o be_v lie_v open_v the_o several_a point_n of_o the_o former_a sentence_n first_o then_o he_o say_v great_a travel_n be_v create_v to_o all_o man_n and_o a_o heavy_a yoke_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o adam_n here_o occupation_n &_o business_n be_v oppose_v to_o rest_n but_o because_o many_o be_v busy_v in_o thing_n comfortable_a and_o pleasant_a as_o in_o hunt_v playing_z singing_z and_o the_o like_a therefore_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la add_v a_o heavy_a yoke_n thereby_o to_o show_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o laboursome_a unpleasant_a and_o toilsome_a occupation_n with_o which_o no_o man_n be_v delight_v and_o which_o all_o endeavour_n to_o decline_v and_o avoid_v and_o this_o most_o troublesome_a occupation_n or_o negotiation_n he_o affirm_v to_o be_v create_v for_o man_n that_o be_v adjoin_v and_o assign_v to_o man_n even_o from_o his_o creation_n as_o a_o individual_a and_o inseparable_a companion_n which_o point_n he_o further_o explicate_v that_o man_n may_v better_o understand_v his_o meaning_n by_o adjoin_v these_o word_n from_o the_o day_n of_o their_o come_n forth_o of_o their_o mother_n womb_n until_o the_o day_n of_o their_o bury_n into_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o therefore_o a_o more_o mild_a and_o gentle_a course_n be_v take_v with_o ox_n which_o bear_v the_o yoke_n in_o the_o daytime_n and_o rest_n in_o the_o night_n then_o with_o man_n who_o both_o day_n and_o night_n be_v force_v to_o bear_v the_o yoke_n of_o labour_n and_o solicitude_n and_o after_o this_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la brief_o touch_v upon_o particular_a troublesome_a molestition_n which_o like_v unto_o a_o most_o heavy_a yoke_n do_v press_n and_o bow_v down_o even_o the_o neck_n of_o mortal_a man_n say_v their_o cogitation_n and_o fear_n of_o the_o hart_n imagination_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v and_o the_o day_n of_o their_o end_n thus_o we_o see_v that_o the_o first_o part_n or_o scene_n of_o their_o laborious_a and_o painful_a travel_n be_v a_o cogitation_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v for_o a_o worldly_a man_n be_v ever_o anxious_a and_o careful_a of_o the_o day_n to_o come_v say_v to_o himself_o what_o shall_v heerter_n fall_v out_o shall_v we_o lose_v the_o small_a good_a which_o we_o now_o enjoy_v and_o from_o this_o rise_v a_o continual_a fear_n of_o the_o hart_n which_o never_o suffer_v a_o man_n
and_o this_o not_o in_o body_n but_o in_o hart_n also_o as_o s._n gregory_n teach_v past._n l._n 2_o c._n 6._o &_o more_o perspicuous_o s._n austin_n ep._n 109._o saying_n let_v government_n before_o man_n be_v in_o honour_n with_o you_o but_o before_o god_n let_v it_o become_v ever_o prostrate_a to_o your_o foot_n since_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o other_o be_v better_a than_o himself_o and_o therefore_o great_a than_o himself_o for_o that_o man_n be_v true_o and_o simple_o great_a who_o be_v great_a with_o god_n now_o with_o god_n he_o be_v great_a who_o be_v better_o and_o he_o be_v better_a who_o more_o excel_v in_o virtue_n notwithstanding_o their_o government_n riches_n title_n crown_n or_o diadem_n since_o they_o be_v virtue_n not_o prelacy_n riches_n honour_n and_o the_o like_a which_o make_v a_o man_n good_a and_o if_o virtue_n do_v make_v man_n good_a then_o the_o great_a virtue_n he_o have_v make_v he_o better_o and_o the_o most_o virtue_n make_v he_o best_o and_o consequent_o they_o who_o be_v invest_v with_o virtue_n in_o a_o more_o high_a degree_n do_v the_o more_o excel_v other_o now_o that_o humility_n be_v one_o of_o these_o great_a and_o prime_a virtue_n appear_v from_o that_o our_o lord_n give_v exaltation_n and_o advancement_n to_o humility_n in_o that_o so_o often_o by_o he_o repeat_v sentence_n matth._n 23._o every_o one_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v which_o sentence_n the_o bless_a virgin_n follow_v in_o her_o canticle_n luc._n 14._o he_o have_v depose_v the_o mighty_a from_o their_o seat_n and_o have_v exalt_v the_o humble_a in_o like_a sort_n s._n peter_n say_v 1_o pet._n 5._o be_v you_o humble_v under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v you_o in_o the_o day_n of_o visitation_n and_o s._n james_n cap._n 4._o be_v you_o humble_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o he_o may_v exalt_v you_o and_o to_o conclude_v s_o paul_n philip._n 2._o thus_o speak_v of_o christ_n himself_o he_o have_v humble_v himself_o for_o which_o thing_n god_n have_v exalt_v he_o now_o because_o virtue_n and_o especial_o charity_n and_o humility_n do_v make_v man_n true_o good_a before_o god_n and_o so_o proportionable_o better_a and_o best_a of_o all_o and_o because_o no_o man_n know_v certain_o how_o he_o stand_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o how_o he_o now_o be_v or_o other_o be_v or_o hereafter_o may_v be_v therefore_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o prefer_v himself_o before_o other_o and_o most_o profitable_a to_o humble_v himself_o after_o other_o therefore_o our_o lord_n absolute_o pronounce_v sit_v down_o in_o the_o low_a place_n but_o who_o be_v he_o th●_n observe_v our_o lord_n precept_n her●_n for_o about_o what_o matter_n be_v there_o great_a contention_n and_o distaste_n among_o man_n then_o about_o precedency_n of_o place_n and_o what_o pain_n do_v man_n take_v who_o labour_n to_o reduce_v to_o peace_n and_o friendship_n such_o as_o contend_v about_o point_n of_o honour_n ●ow_o may_v have_v we_o hear_v allege_v that_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n isa_n 4_o or_o rather_o usurp_v it_o i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n to_o another_o but_o let_v such_o remember_v that_o the_o prophet_n speak_v these_o word_n in_o the_o person_n of_o almighty_n god_n to_o who_o alone_a glory_n just_o agree_v for_o god_n alone_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v humble_a since_o humility_n be_v a_o virtue_n which_o bridle_v the_o desire_n of_o a_o man_n and_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o ascend_v above_o himself_o but_o god_n who_o be_v most_o high_a have_v nothing_o above_o he_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o insufferable_a pride_n that_o a_o poor_a worm_n of_o the_o earth_n dare_v contest_v and_o say_v i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n to_o another_o and_o yet_o we_o may_v observe_v that_o these_o poor_a worm_n who_o wind_n and_o pride_n do_v so_o puff_v up_o as_o that_o they_o say_v with_o god_n i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o honour_n to_o another_o do_v nevertheless_o so_o debase_v and_o cast_v themselves_o ●●wne_v as_o that_o confess_o they_o be●●●●e_v thrall_n and_o slave_n to_o honour_n i_o mean_v to_o a_o windy_a estimation_n consist_v in_o the_o breath_n of_o other_o man_n and_o thus_o they_o do_v so_o faithful_o serve_v this_o their_o lord_n or_o rather_o idol_n as_o that_o they_o rather_o choose_v in_o ●ingle_a fight_n or_o duelism_n to_o be_v cruel_o slay_v and_o so_o by_o descend_v to_o hell_n to_o loose_v both_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a life_n then_o that_o their_o honour_n shall_v suffer_v any_o dispargement_n forsooth_o or_o disgrace_n from_o they_o o_o vanity_n of_o vanity_n and_o how_o wonderful_o do_v this_o smoke_n of_o honour_n blind_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o we_o be_v christian_n and_o we_o know_v that_o christ_n himself_o do_v hear_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o enemy_n these_o ensue_a reproach_n behold_v a_o man_n that_o be_v a_o glutton_n and_o a_o wine-drinker_n matth._n 11._o and_o again_o thou_o be_v a_o samaritane_n and_o have_v a_o devil_n joan._n 8._o and_o more_o he_o cast_v forth_o devil_n in_o belzebub_n the_o prince_n of_o devil_n and_o yet_o in_o answer_n to_o all_o this_o no_o man_n do_v hear_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o word_n thou_o lie_v or_o the_o like_a but_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n hereof_o to_o wit_n because_o he_o be_v meek_a and_o humble_a of_o h●rt_n and_o when_o he_o be_v revile_v do_v not_o revyle_v and_o when_o he_o suffer_v he_o threaten_v not_o as_o s._n peter_n say_v 1_o pet._n 2._o now_o from_o these_o point_n above_o discuss_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v encompass_v with_o great_a strait_n and_o penetrable_a but_o unto_o few_o and_o this_o no_o less_o in_o regard_n of_o humility_n then_o of_o the_o theological_a virtue_n faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v demand_v whether_o they_o be_v few_o that_o be_v save_v it_o may_v most_o true_o be_v reply_v that_o they_o be_v but_o few_o because_o there_o be_v but_o few_o who_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v do_v labour_n with_o all_o their_o force_n and_o endeavour_v to_o enter_v by_o the_o strait_a way_n of_o that_o heavenly_a gate_n a_o second_o discourse_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o gate_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n chap._n x._o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v think_v through_o over_o much_o terror_n and_o fear_n to_o avert_v man_n from_o their_o entrance_n into_o this_o gate_n since_o our_o only_a drift_n and_o scope_n throughout_o this_o book_n be_v to_o inflame_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o desire_v and_o seek_v after_o our_o most_o sweet_a and_o most_o bless_a country_n i_o will_v therefore_o brief_o show_v that_o that_o gate_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o eminency_n and_o perfection_n of_o the_o former_a virtue_n be_v most_o narrow_a &_o straight_o may_v also_o through_o the_o omnipotency_n truth_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v most_o wide_o and_o large_a and_o easy_a for_o entrance_n if_o so_o a_o man_n do_v true_o desire_v to_o enter_v thereinto_o and_o that_o we_o may_v begin_v with_o faith_n true_a it_o be_v that_o faith_n teach_v article_n and_o point_n most_o hard_a far_o transcend_v all_o sense_n and_o reason_n and_o far_o advance_v above_o the_o natural_a capacity_n even_o of_o the_o angel_n yet_o when_o we_o be_v admonish_v by_o faith_n itself_o that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v those_o point_n or_o speculation_n through_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n who_o can_v lie_v of_o angel_n or_o of_o man_n then_o the_o straytnes_n of_o this_o port_n of_o gate_n begin_v to_o be_v delate_a and_o enlarge_v if_o faith_n shall_v command_v &_o say_v believe_v that_o there_o be_v three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n believe_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o a_o virgin_n believe_v that_o christ_n do_v rise_v after_o three_o day_n from_o the_o dead_a by_o his_o own_o virtue_n and_o power_n after_o be_v immortal_a and_o believe_v all_o these_o thing_n most_o firm_o and_o undoubted_o because_o s._n peter_n s._n paul_n s._n john_n isay_n jeremy_n &_o ezechiel_n have_v deliver_v these_o point_n for_o true_a i_o shall_v without_o doubt_n waver_v and_o rest_v doubtful_a therein_o neither_o can_v i_o be_v easy_o induce_v to_o give_v credit_n thereto_o only_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n like_v unto_o myself_o because_o it_o be_v write_v psal_n 115_o every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o therefore_o so_o many_o oath_n &_o surety_n be_v exact_v that_o we_o may_v credit_v man_n but_o whereas_o faith_n say_v all_o these_o former_a article_n of_o belief_n god_n have_v first_o reveal_v and_o that_o neither_o peter_n nor_o
good_a thief_n hang_v with_o he_o upon_o the_o cross_n luc._n 23._o to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n for_o by_o the_o word_n paradise_n our_o saviour_n do_v understand_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o essential_a beatitude_n for_o when_o the_o thief_n have_v say_v o_o lord_n remember_v i_o when_o thou_o shall_v come_v into_o thy_o kingdom_n our_o lord_n promise_v to_o he_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o kingdom_n do_v answer_v to_o day_n thou_o shall_v be_v with_o i_o in_o paradise_n the_o same_o be_v also_o witness_v by_o s._n paul_n when_o he_o say_v 2._o cor._n 12._o i_o know_v a_o man_n in_o christ_n rapt_v even_o to_o the_o three_o heaven_n he_o be_v rapt_v into_o paradise_n s._n john_n do_v witness_v the_o same_o in_o his_o apocalyps_n cap._n 2._o where_o he_o bring_v in_o our_o lord_n thus_o speak_v to_o he_o that_o overcom_v i_o will_v give_v to_o eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n which_o be_v in_o the_o paradise_n of_o my_o god_n now_o from_o these_o passage_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o region_n of_o the_o bless_a be_v a_o place_n of_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n furthermore_o when_o our_o lord_n say_v to_o the_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n math._n 25._o enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n do_v he_o not_o most_o open_o declare_v the_o house_n of_o god_n or_o the_o city_n of_o god_n to_o the_o which_o all_o the_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n be_v admit_v after_o their_o pass_v out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o be_v a_o place_n of_o joy_n and_o where_o in_o many_o place_n be_v compare_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o a_o supper_n as_o in_o luc._n 14._o a_o certain_a m●n_z make_v a_o great_a supper_n and_o again_o cap._n 22._o where_o he_o say_v and_o i_o dispose_v to_o you_o as_o my_o father_n dispose_v to_o i_o a_o kingdom_n that_o you_o may_v eat_v and_o drink_v upon_o my_o table_n in_o my_o kingdom_n to_o conclude_v in_o the_o apocalyps●t_n ●t_z be_v say_v cap._n 19_o bless_a be_v they_o who_o be_v call_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n certain_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o supper_n signify_v delectation_n and_o pleasure_n except_o we_o will_v maintain_v that_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o taste_v there_o be_v no_o pleasure_n and_o we_o may_v annex_v hereto_o that_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o apocalips_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v compare_v to_o a_o regal_a or_o princely_a supper_n as_o be_v evident_a out_o of_o that_o king_n who_o make_v a_o marriage_n for_o his_o son_n and_o out_o of_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o wise_a &_o foolish_a virgin_n of_o which_o the_o wise_a virgin_n do_v enter_v with_o the_o bridegroom_n to_o the_o marriage_n but_o the_o foolish_a virgin_n be_v shut_v out_o we_o also_o find_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n many_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v celebrate_v with_o all_o magnificent_a preparation_n furthermore_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v compare_v to_o princely_a marriage_n at_o what_o time_n all_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n almost_o be_v enjoy_v of_o which_o point_n we_o be_v further_o to_o discourse_n in_o the_o next_o ensue_a book_n to_o conclude_v s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n do_v see_v a_o company_n of_o virgin_n who_o do_v follow_v the_o lamb_n wheresoever_o he_o go_v and_o do_v sing_v a_o new_a song_n which_o no_o other_o can_v sing_v which_o place_n s._n austin_n expound_v of_o certain_a holy_a joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o the_o virgin_n either_o man_n or_o woman_n do_v enjoy_v his_o word_n be_v these_o you_o shall_v bring_v to_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n a_o new_a song_n which_o you_o shall_v sing_v upon_o your_o cithern_n that_o be_v you_o shall_v sing_v praise_n in_o your_o heart_n not_o such_o as_o the_o whole_a earth_n sing_v but_o such_o as_o not_o any_o can_v sing_v but_o yourselves_o aug._n de_fw-fr sancta_fw-la virgin_n c._n 27._o and_o then_o after_o whither_o may_v we_o think_v this_o lamb_n will_v go_v where_o none_o shall_v be_v able_a or_o dare_v to_o follow_v he_o but_o yourselves_o whither_o may_v we_o think_v he_o to_o go_v into_o what_o garden_n or_o other_o pleasant_a place_n thither_o i_o believe_v where_o the_o grass_n be_v joy_n not_o the_o vain_a joy_n of_o this_o world_n be_v but_o lie_a madness_n neither_o the_o joy_n which_o be_v grant_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o other_o not_o be_v virgin_n but_o they_o be_v joy_n distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o kind_n of_o joy_n and_o then_o again_o a_o little_a after_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v see_v you_o which_o can_v follow_v this_o lamb_n they_o shall_v see_v but_o the_o shall_v not_o enjoy_v and_o rejoice_v with_o you_o that_o which_o they_o have_v not_o in_o themselves_o they_o shall_v have_v in_o you_o for_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o sing_v that_o new_a song_n peculiar_a to_o you_o but_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o hear_v it_o and_o to_o be_v delight_v in_o your_o great_a delight_n but_o you_o who_o shall_v both_o sing_v and_o hear_v this_o new_a song_n because_o in_o that_o you_o shall_v sing_v it_o you_o shall_v hear_v it_o you_o shall_v with_o more_o felicity_n exult_v or_o rejoice_v and_o with_o more_o pleasure_n reign_n ibid._n c._n 29._o thus_o from_o all_o above_o express_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o in_o the_o heavenly_a kingdom_n and_o city_n or_o house_n there_o be_v many_o true_a joy_n and_o most_o true_a and_o most_o great_a pleasure_n of_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o understanding_n chap._n ii_o see_v above_o we_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o there_o be_v true_a joy_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n we_o will_v now_o explicate_v what_o those_o joy_n be_v and_o first_o we_o will_v undertake_v to_o show_v what_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o understanding_n will_n and_o memory_n be_v all_o which_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o spirit_n or_o soul_n next_o what_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o several_a sense_n be_v which_o do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o body_n we_o do_v not_o inten●_n hereby_o to_o maintain_v that_o the_o understanding_n the_o memory_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o proper_a seat_n of_o joy_n for_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o joy_n as_o also_o desire_v do_v proper_o belong_v to_o the_o will_n in_o the_o superior_a part_n and_o to_o the_o appetite_n in_o the_o inferior_a but_o we_o hear_v speak_v as_o man_n do_v vulgar_o speak_v who_o forbear_v not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o eye_n be_v delight_v with_o the_o beauty_n of_o colour_n and_o the_o ear_n with_o sweetness_n of_o sound_n therefore_o we_o understand_v by_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o mind_n or_o of_o the_o memory_n or_o of_o the_o externall_n sense_n a_o delectation_n or_o pleasure_n which_o a_o man_n take_v from_o those_o thing_n which_o either_o he_o do_v understand_v or_o remember_v or_o which_o he_o do_v draw_v from_o the_o external_a sense_n the_o first_o joy_n then_o of_o the_o bless_a shall_v be_v to_o see_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n god_n even_o face_n to_o face_n as_o s._n paul_n speak_v and_o as_o s._n john_n say_v to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v now_o how_o great_a a_o joy_n this_o will_v be_v we_o may_v in_o part_n conjecture_n in_o that_o the_o prophet_n isay_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v witness_n that_o it_o exceed_v all_o the_o joy_n which_o any_o man_n have_v either_o see_v hear_v desire_a or_o ever_o imagine_v the_o eye_n have_v not_o see_v nor_o the_o ear_n have_v hear_v neither_o have_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o har●_n of_o man_n what_o thing_n god_n have_v prepare_v for_o they_o that_o love_v he_o isa_n 64._o 1._o cor._n 2_o for_o the_o scripture_n here_o speak_v of_o the_o chief_a and_o essential_a beatitude_n or_o happiness_n which_o be_v place_v in_o the_o vision_n and_o sight_n of_o god_n himself_o according_a to_o that_o save_n of_o our_o lord_n matth._n 5_o blessed_a be_v the_o clean_a of_o hart_n for_o they_o shall_v see_v god_n and_n this_o be_v life_n everlasting_a that_o they_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o who_o thou_o have_v send_v jesus_n christ._n and_o true_o there_o seem_v in_o the_o former_a word_n a_o great_a amplification_n to_o wit_n that_o no_o man_n have_v either_o see_v or_o hear_v or_o desire_v or_o thought_n what_o kind_n of_o joy_n consist_v in_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v no_o amplification_n but_o a_o simple_a truth_n because_o the_o eye_n the_o ear_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v accustom_v to_o perceive_v only_a joy_n that_o have_v end_n but_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n be_v
all_o who_o enjoy_v most_o vast_a and_o large_a kingdom_n and_o be_v so_o devote_a or_o rather_o become_v slave_n to_o all_o sort_n of_o pleasure_n of_o the_o flesh_n as_o that_o they_o give_v all_o liberty_n to_o the_o hart_n to_o the_o eye_n to_o the_o ear_n to_o their_o taste_n unto_o lust_n wallow_v in_o all_o such_o voluptuousness_n and_o sensuality_n as_o may_v content_v any_o of_o these_o part_n but_o to_o pass_v over_o these_o joy_n of_o which_o but_o few_o be_v partaker_n how_o great_a be_v the_o consolation_n and_o joy_n which_o god_n give_v to_o all_o man_n in_o common_a of_o who_o the_o great_a part_n either_o know_v not_o god_n or_o at_o lest_o do_v not_o adore_v he_o with_o that_o honour_n &_o fear_n with_o which_o they_o oxght_v do_v he_o not_o give_v all_o the_o earth_n with_o all_o its_o riches_n delight_n live_v creature_n flower_n metal_n to_o man_n in_o general_n do_v he_o not_o give_v the_o sea_n the_o fountain_n river_n lake_n with_o so_o several_a sort_n of_o fish_n to_o all_o man_n promiscuous_o have_v he_o not_o create_v heaven_n which_o be_v as_o a_o cover_n of_o this_o great_a house_n and_o beautify_v with_o so_o many_o star_n for_o the_o general_a use_n of_o man_n have_v not_o this_o our_o most_o gracious_a and_o most_o bountiful_a lord_n command_v the_o sun_n to_o rise_v and_o the_o cloud_n to_o rain_v upon_o both_o the_o just_a &_o injust_a now_o if_o he_o be_v so_o profuse_a as_o i_o may_v say_v in_o distribute_v so_o great_a benefit_n &_o comfort_n to_o reprobate_a sinner_n be_v his_o ungrateful_a bondslave_n &_o worthy_a all_o punishment_n in_o this_o life_n be_v it_o than_o not_o most_o just_a and_o reasonable_a that_o he_o shall_v reserve_v incomparable_o far_a great_a joy_n for_o his_o friend_n and_o his_o son_n hear_v what_o s_n austin_n meditate_v hereof_o say_v in_o psal_n 10._o see_v god_n give_v to_o sinner_n daily_o blaspheme_v he_o the_o heaven_n the_o earth_n the_o fountain_n fruit_n health_n child_n riches_n abundance_n of_o all_o temporal_a benefit_n what_o then_o do_v thou_o think_v he_o lay_v up_o and_o provide_v for_o his_o servant_n who_o give_v all_o these_o former_a joy_n and_o comfort_n to_o sinner_n it_o be_v write_v of_o s._n fulgentius_n in_o his_o life_n that_o he_o once_o behold_v the_o glory_n and_o magnificence_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o rome_n do_v burst_v forth_o into_o exclamation_n say_v how_o specious_a &_o illustrious_a may_v the_o celestial_a jerusalem_n be_v if_o earthly_a rome_n do_v thus_o shine_v and_o if_o in_o this_o world_n so_o great_a dignity_n and_o honour_n be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o lover_n of_o vanity_n what_o honour_n and_o glory_n shall_v be_v due_a to_o the_o saint_n contemplate_v the_o truth_n certain_o s._n austin_n who_o make_v a_o prudent_a and_o true_a estimation_n of_o thing_n affirm_v all_o earthly_a pleasure_n whatsoever_o to_o be_v so_o far_o short_a and_o inferior_a to_o celestial_a as_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v wish_v for_o a_o man_n to_o enjoy_v heavenly_a pleasure_n but_o for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o day_n then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o temporal_a pleasure_n for_o many_o thousand_o of_o age_n his_o word_n be_v these_o l._n 3._o de_fw-fr lib._n arbit_fw-la c._n vit_fw-mi so_o great_a be_v the_o pleasure_n of_o eternal_a light_n as_o that_o if_o it_o be_v permit_v for_o one_o to_o remain_v and_o stay_v therein_o no_o more_o than_o the_o space_n of_o one_o day_n yet_o even_o for_o so_o short_a a_o space_n of_o the_o fruition_n thereof_o innumerable_a year_n of_o this_o life_n though_o fraught_v with_o all_o delight_n and_o affluence_n of_o temporal_a good_n be_v deserve_o to_o be_v contemn_v for_o it_o be_v not_o say_v through_o any_o false_a or_o mistake_a judgement_n psal_n 83._o better_a be_v one_o day_n in_o thy_o court_n above_o thousand_o thus_o s._n austin_n now_o what_o shall_v we_o from_o all_o this_o conclude_v if_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a as_o they_o be_v most_o true_a have_v we_o not_o reason_n as_o length_n to_o begin_v to_o be_v wise_a and_o open_v our_o eye_n hitherto_o we_o have_v be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o earthly_a pleasure_n be_v to_o be_v contemn_v because_o they_o be_v but_o short_a and_o momentary_a and_o that_o celestial_a be_v to_o be_v love_v because_o they_o be_v everlasting_a but_o we_o have_v hear_v s._n austin_n a_o most_o wise_a doctor_n inveigh_v against_o this_o our_o manner_n of_o speech_n and_o earnest_o contest_v that_o if_o earthly_a matter_n be_v everlasting_a and_o celestial_a but_o momentary_a that_o nevertheless_o in_o a_o clear_a judgement_n heavenly_a good_n and_o benefit_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o earthly_a be_v we_o not_o therefore_o deaf_a be_v we_o not_o blind_a be_v we_o not_o fool_n and_o stupid_a if_o for_o earthly_a benefit_n &_o pleasure_n which_o be_v not_o only_o base_a and_o ignoble_a but_o also_o fade_v and_o momentary_a we_o do_v contemn_v or_o sleight_v celestial_a which_o be_v most_o precious_a and_o shall_v continue_v for_o all_o eternity_n o_o most_o merciful_a lord_n dissolve_v this_o our_o deafnes_n enlighten_v our_o blindness_n dispel_v our_o stupidity_n &_o cure_v our_o madness_n to_o what_o end_n have_v thou_o sign_v upon_o we_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n psal_n 4._o if_o we_o can_v discern_v and_o see_v these_o so_o great_a and_o so_o necessary_a matter_n and_o why_o have_v thou_o give_v we_o judgement_n of_o reason_n if_o we_o do_v not_o penetrate_v point_n so_o evident_a a_o comparison_n of_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n with_o the_o celestial_a chap._n x._o we_o have_v above_o compare_v the_o joy_n of_o this_o world_n with_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o this_o next_o place_n we_o will_v brief_o parallel_v together_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n how_o great_a the_o joy_n of_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n be_v may_v be_v know_v from_o that_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o garden_n of_o delight_n allot_v to_o man_n who_o be_v create_v to_o the_o image_n &_o similitude_n of_o god_n whereas_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v give_v to_o brute_n beast_n and_o hereupon_o when_o adam_n by_o sin_v do_v lose_v his_o honour_n in_o which_o god_n have_v constitute_v he_o and_o be_v make_v like_o to_o beast_n without_o understanding_n psal_n 48._o he_o be_v then_o cast_v out_o of_o that_o place_n and_o banish_v into_o this_o s._n alcuinus_fw-la surname_v auitas_fw-la writing_n upon_o genesis_n do_v lively_o describe_v this_o terrestrial_a paradise_n and_o show_v it_o to_o have_v be_v a_o region_n most_o pleasant_a and_o most_o temperate_a where_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o summer_n do_v not_o scorch_v or_o burn_v nor_o the_o cold_a of_o the_o winter_n annoy_n or_o hurt_v but_o a_o perpetual_a spring_n of_o flower_n do_v exhilerate_v &_o refresh_v and_o the_o autumn_n to_o abound_v with_o all_o kind_n of_o fruit_n his_o word_n be_v these_o hic_fw-la ver_fw-la assiduum_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o this_o place_n the_o mildness_n of_o the_o air_n cause_v a_o continual_a spring_n the_o tempestuous_a southwind_n be_v absent_a the_o cloud_n do_v fly_v away_o from_o under_o the_o clear_a firmament_n give_v place_n to_o a_o continual_a serenity_n neither_o do_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o soil_n require_v any_o shower_n since_o the_o bud_n and_o the_o young_a plant_n be_v content_a with_o the_o fall_a dew_n thus_o see_v neither_o winter_n to_o hurt_v nor_o summer_n to_o burn_v the_o autumn_n furnish_v the_o year_n with_o all_o fruit_n and_o the_o spring-tyme_n with_o flower_n thus_o he_o s._n basill_n in_o like_a manner_n lib._n de_fw-la paradiso_fw-la thus_o describe_v this_o terrestrial_a paradise_n say_v illic_fw-la plantavit_fw-la deus_fw-la etc._n etc._n god_n place_v paradise_n there_o where_o no_o violence_n of_o wynd_n nor_o unpleasantnes_n of_o time_n nor_o hail_n nor_o lightning_n nor_o thunder_n nor_o frost_n nor_o moisture_n nor_o scorch_a eat_v nor_o dryness_n be_v to_o be_v find_v but_o there_o be_v a_o peaceful_a and_o temperate_a agreement_n of_o all_o time_n among_o themselves_o etc._n etc._n and_o s._n austin_n agree_v with_o the_o former_a doctor_n in_o describe_v this_o terrestrial_a paradise_n lib._n 14._o de_fw-fr civit._n cap._n 10._o quid_fw-la timere_fw-la vel_fw-la dolere_fw-la poterant_fw-la illi_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o shall_v those_o man_n fear_v or_o grieve_v at_o who_o be_v even_o encompass_v about_o with_o such_o a_o affluency_n of_o so_o great_a good_n where_o neither_o death_n nor_o any_o evil_a disposition_n of_o the_o body_n be_v to_o be_v fear_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n absent_a which_o a_o virtuous_a will_n can_v desire_v nor_o any_o thing_n there_o present_a which_o can_v displease_v or_o offend_v the_o flesh_n or_o mind_n of_o a_o man_n live_v happy_o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o a_o little_a
after_o how_o happy_a therefore_o be_v our_o first_o parent_n who_o be_v not_o trouble_v with_o any_o perturbation_n of_o the_o mind_n nor_o hurt_v with_o any_o discommodity_n of_o the_o body_n so_o happy_a shall_v all_o mankind_n have_v be_v if_o they_o have_v commit_v no_o evil_n which_o after_o they_o do_v cast_v upon_o their_o child_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o posterity_n have_v perpetrate_v iniquity_n which_o shall_v deserve_v damnation_n thus_o s._n austin_n but_o howsoever_o these_o particularity_n of_o the_o pleasantness_n and_o frutfulnes_n of_o this_o terrestrial_a paradise_n go_v we_o infallible_o gather_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o it_o be_v a_o far_o more_o happy_a place_n than_o this_o our_o habitation_n be_v since_o it_o be_v say_v to_o adam_n by_o way_n of_o punishment_n of_o his_o sin_n gen._n 3._o because_o thou_o have_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o thy_o wife_n and_o have_v eat_v of_o the_o tree_n whereof_o i_o command_v thou_o not_o to_o eat_v curse_v he_o the_o earth_n in_o thy_o work_n with_o much_o toil_n &_o labour_n shall_v thou_o eat_v thereof_o all_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o life_n thorn_n and_o thisle_n shall_v it_o bring_v forth_o to_o thou_o and_o to_o the_o woman_n it_o be_v say_v i_o will_v multiply_v thy_o sorrow_n and_o thy_o childbearing_n in_o travail_n thou_o shall_v be_v under_o thy_o husband_n power_n and_o he_o shall_v have_v dominion_n over_o thou_o thus_o we_o see_v that_o in_o paradise_n there_o be_v not_o any_o barrenes_n of_o earth_n nor_o be_v it_o to_o be_v inhabit_v with_o any_o labour_n or_o pain_n neither_o do_v it_o bring_v forth_o any_o thorn_n or_o thisle_n in_o like_o sort_n the_o woman_n there_o shall_v never_o have_v conceive_v in_o vain_a but_o their_o conceaving_n shall_v ever_o have_v be_v accompany_v with_o most_o happy_a birth_n and_o although_o they_o have_v be_v subject_a to_o their_o husband_n yet_o this_o not_o after_o any_o lord_n like_o authority_n over_o they_o but_o after_o a_o civil_a and_o moderate_a manner_n therefore_o man_n shall_v there_o have_v lead_v a_o happy_a life_n void_a of_o all_o fear_n grief_n or_o labour_n now_o if_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n want_v all_o evil_a and_o abound_v with_o many_o and_o great_a good_n and_o commodity_n what_o then_o may_v we_o conceive_v of_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o high_a and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o good_a by_o how_o much_o the_o person_n for_o which_o it_o be_v ordain_v be_v better_a but_o the_o height_n of_o the_o heaven_n of_o the_o bless_a be_v without_o any_o comparison_n more_o sublime_a and_o high_a than_o the_o paradise_n of_o adam_n and_o the_o bless_a man_n in_o heaven_n who_o can_v neither_o sin_n nor_o die_v be_v by_o infinite_a degree_n better_o than_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n who_o can_v both_o sin_n and_o die_v therefore_o we_o may_v inevitable_o infer_v that_o the_o heavenly_a paradise_n do_v not_o only_o want_v all_o evil_a but_o that_o it_o be_v replenish_v with_o pleasure_n goodness_n and_o felicity_n and_o this_o incomparable_o great_a in_o worth_n and_o more_o in_o number_n than_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n do_v abound_v now_o these_o thing_n be_v most_o certain_a let_v we_o burst_v out_o into_o thanks_o and_o gratefulness_n to_o god_n who_o for_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n take_v from_o we_o through_o the_o malice_n and_o envy_n of_o the_o devil_n have_v by_o the_o redemption_n of_o his_o son_n prepare_v for_o we_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n far_o more_o bless_v and_o happy_a and_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v unthankful_a to_o so_o great_a a_o redeemer_n and_o also_o that_o we_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v enemy_n to_o ourselves_o let_v we_o strive_v with_o all_o our_o endeavour_n and_o force_n to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n and_o to_o enlarge_v the_o way_n thereto_o by_o a_o entire_a faith_n sincere_a hope_n perfect_a charity_n and_o good_a work_n a_o comparison_n of_o the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n &_o the_o good_n of_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n join_v together_o with_o the_o good_n of_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n only_o chap._n xi_o but_o let_v we_o proceed_v further_o in_o this_o our_o balance_v of_o thing_n and_o let_v we_o compare_v all_o the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n as_o also_o all_o the_o good_n of_o the_o earthly_a paradise_n join_v together_o with_o the_o good_n only_o of_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n and_o so_o see_v whether_o of_o these_o do_v preponderate_a and_o weigh_v down_o the_o other_o this_o we_o shall_v more_o easy_o effect_v if_o we_o conceive_v that_o riches_n empire_n pleasure_n and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o solomon_n and_o of_o all_o other_o like_o most_o happy_a man_n can_v be_v obtain_v without_o labour_n and_o retain_v and_o keep_v without_o fear_n as_o also_o if_o we_o further_o suppose_v such_o most_o fortunate_a man_n never_o to_o sin_v nor_o nevet_n to_o die_v yet_o so_o as_o that_o they_o may_v sin_v and_o may_v die_v now_o all_o this_o by_o supposal_n be_v grant_v i_o most_o confident_o affirm_v that_o the_o good_n of_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n only_o do_v infinite_o surpass_v all_o the_o good_n of_o this_o world_n and_o of_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n together_o from_o whence_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o those_o good_n be_v join_v together_o can_v neither_o satisfy_v the_o mind_n nor_o satiate_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o mind_n since_o the_o hart_n of_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o a_o infinite_a and_o boundless_a good_a therefore_o that_o shall_v ever_o stand_v for_o a_o true_a &_o main_a position_n which_o s._n austin_n have_v leave_v record_v lib._n 1._o confess_v cap._n 1._o thou_o have_v o_o lord_n make_v we_o for_o thyself_o and_o to_o the_o likeness_n of_o thyself_o yet_o our_o hart_n be_v unquiet_a till_o it_o rest_v in_o thy_o sclfe_n and_o so_o true_a also_o be_v that_o which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v psal_n 16._o i_o shall_v be_v fill_v when_o thy_o glory_n shall_v appear_v now_o so_o long_o as_o the_o hart_n shall_v be_v unquiet_a it_o shall_v be_v miserable_a and_o if_o it_o be_v miserable_a so_o long_o it_o can_v be_v bless_v or_o happy_a but_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n enjoy_v this_o privilege_n that_o it_o be_v of_o power_n to_o satiate_v the_o soul_n and_o to_o exile_n and_o expel_v all_o unquietness_n and_o solicitude_n for_o what_o can_v that_o man_n want_v who_o shall_v be_v like_a to_o god_n because_o he_o shall_v see_v god_n as_o he_o be_v 1._o joan._n 3._o what_o can_v he_o want_v who_o god_n shall_v constitute_v or_o appoint_v over_o all_o good_n matth._n 24._o what_o can_v he_o want_v who_o shall_v reign_v with_o god_n shall_v be_v coheyre_n with_o christ_n who_o the_o father_n have_v appoint_v heir_n of_o all_o heb._n 1_o i_o say_v what_o can_v this_o man_n want_n except_o he_o will_v dream_v that_o god_n himself_o be_v miserable_a furthermore_o those_o good_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o terrestrial_a paradise_n how_o great_a or_o of_o what_o nature_n soever_o they_o may_v be_v in_o that_o they_o stand_v obnoxious_a to_o be_v lose_v be_v not_o perfect_a good_n neither_o can_v they_o satiate_v the_o mind_n or_o give_v to_o it_o a_o full_a repose_n or_o rest_n and_o for_o this_o respect_n they_o do_v not_o nor_o can_v make_v a_o man_n bless_a or_o happy_a but_o the_o good_n of_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n be_v on_o every_o side_n perfect_a &_o stable_a neither_o be_v they_o in_o any_o sort_n subject_n to_o loss_n or_o dimunition_n for_o the_o saint_n place_v in_o those_o most_o happy_a seat_n can_v neither_o die_v neither_o can_v they_o sin_n and_o of_o their_o everlasting_a felicity_n they_o be_v most_o secure_a therefore_o let_v mortal_a man_n open_v their_o eye_n let_v they_o often_o call_v to_o mind_n of_o what_o moment_n it_o be_v not_o to_o loose_v the_o celestial_a paradise_n for_o hear_v the_o business_n touch_v the_o main_a matter_n of_o all_o other_o and_o be_v not_o about_o trifle_n or_o fade_a vanity_n and_o therefore_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n even_o through_o a_o divine_a judgement_n have_v pronounce_v what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o sustain_v the_o damage_n of_o his_o soul_n matt._n 16._o marc._n 8._o luc._n 9_o a_o comparison_n of_o the_o price_n of_o the_o celestial_a paradise_n and_o the_o paradise_n itself_o chap._n xii_o the_o last_o comparison_n shall_v be_v of_o the_o price_n with_o the_o which_o christ_n do_v buy_v paradise_n and_o with_o the_o which_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v buy_v of_o we_o with_o relation_n to_o the_o greatness_n and_o dignity_n of_o paradise_n itself_o christ_n with_o effusion_n of_o his_o own_o most_o precious_a blood_n do_v buy_v paradise_n for_o we_o which_o the_o envy_n of_o
say_v the_o thing_n that_o please_v he_o i_o do_v always_o joan._n 8._o and_o the_o like_a do_v the_o apostle_n the_o true_a imitator_n of_o christ_n say_v 2._o cor._n 5._o we_o strive_v whether_o we_o be_v ahsent_a or_o present_a to_o please_v he_o this_o perfect_a renunciation_n and_o disclaim_v from_o all_o thing_n which_o a_o man_n possess_v or_o desire_n to_o possess_v this_o abnegation_n of_o a_o man_n self_n that_o he_o may_v serve_v only_a god_n be_v the_o true_a price_n of_o paradise_n neither_o follow_v it_o that_o who_o give_v himself_o away_o after_o this_o manner_n that_o he_o may_v buy_v paradise_n do_v loose_v himself_o but_o most_o true_o &_o most_o happy_o he_o do_v find_v himself_o according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n matth._n ●0_n he_o that_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o i_o shall_v find_v it_o he_o that_o hate_v his_o life_n in_o this_o world_n do_v keep_v it_o to_o life_n everlasting_a but_o because_o this_o wisdom_n be_v hide_v from_o the_o wise_n and_o prudent_a man_n of_o this_o wor_n d_o who_o true_o be_v fool_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o because_o the_o number_n of_o fool_n be_v infinite_a therefore_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v matth._n 22._o of_o the_o eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o parabolicall_a name_n the_o five_o book_n of_o a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o the_o field_n chap._n i._n hitherto_o i_o have_v write_v so_o far_o forth_o as_o god_n have_v vouchsafe_v to_o dictate_v to_o i_o in_o my_o meditation_n of_o the_o felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n under_o the_o name_n of_o those_o place_n which_o they_o do_v inhabit_v i_o mean_v under_o the_o place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n of_o ●he_n house_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o para●_n 〈◊〉_d delight_n and_o pleasure_n i_o will_v in_o this_o next_o place_n add_v something_o concern_v the_o same_o felicity_n under_o the_o name_n of_o such_o thing_n to_o the_o which_o our_o lord_n in_o parable_n have_v compare_v the_o felicity_n of_o saint_n and_o here_o in_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o those_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_o etc._n etc._n the_o which_o our_o lord_n do_v common_o use_v be_v not_o ever_o refer_v to_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v as_o where_o our_o lord_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o merchant_n man_n he_o mean_v not_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a unto_o a_o merchant_n man_n but_o he_o refer_v those_o word_n to_o the_o whole_a narration_n in_o which_o by_o way_n of_o similitude_n the_o way_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v demonstrate_v and_o further_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v sometime_o in_o the_o parable_n describe_v more_o obscure_o at_o other_o time_n more_o clear_o and_o sometime_o not_o touch_v at_o all_o i_o will_v explicate_v the_o several_a member_n of_o this_o division_n whereas_o our_o lord_n in_o s._n matthew_n set_v down_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a he_o describe_v the_o fruit_n which_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n bring_v forth_o according_a to_o the_o diverse_a disposition_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o this_o he_o call_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o touch_v the_o beatitude_n of_o the_o saint_n he_o speak_v nothing_o but_o where_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o same_o place_n do_v add_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o cockle_n he_o brief_o touch_v the_o felicity_n of_o saint_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o good_a seed_n or_o wheat_n be_v to_o be_v gather_v up_o into_o the_o barn_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o cockle_n to_o be_v tie_v together_o and_o burn_v but_o when_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o relate_v the_o parable_n of_o he_o that_o seek_v for_o good_a pearl_n and_o of_o he_o that_o do_v find_v the_o treasure_n hide_v in_o the_o field_n then_o more_o perspicuous_o he_o compare_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o a_o pearl_n and_o to_o a_o treasure_n and_o of_o this_o three_o kind_n among_o the_o parable_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o find_v only_o six_o one_o of_o a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o a_o field_n another_o of_o a_o precious_a margarite_n or_o pearl_n the_o three_o of_o the_o daily_a penny_n the_o four_o of_o the_o lord_n or_o master_n distribute_v the_o talent_n the_o five_o of_o a_o great_a supper_n the_o sixth_o of_o a_o marriage_n to_o the_o which_o we_o will_v adjoine_v two_o similitude_n out_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o one_o of_o those_o who_o run_v in_o a_o race_n the_o other_o who_o fight_n or_o stryve_v for_o the_o mastery_n so_o as_o there_o shall_v be_v eight_o consideration_n touch_v the_o bless_a life_n of_o the_o saint_n deduce_v from_o parabolicall_a name_n or_o title_n the_o first_o parable_n than_o be_v take_v from_o s._n matthew_n cap_n 13._o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v like_a to_o a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o a_o field_n where_o our_o lord_n teach_v how_o it_o may_v be_v get_v when_o he_o say_v which_o when_o a_o man_n have_v find_v do_v hide_v it_o and_o for_o joy_n thereof_o go_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o buy_v that_o field_n treasure_n signify_v a_o great_a abundance_n of_o gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n as_o paulus_n the_o civil_a lawyer_n teach_v the_o acquir_n rerum_fw-la dom_n l._n nunquam_fw-la &_o this_o treasure_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o ancient_a as_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o memory_n thereof_o before_o and_o therefore_o it_o have_v no_o proper_a lord_n but_o belong_v by_o right_a to_o he_o that_o find_v it_o this_o treasure_n in_o s._n matthew_n be_v the_o divinity_n itself_o which_o be_v hide_v in_o the_o field_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n as_o s._n hilarius_n and_o s._n jerome_n in_o com._n cap._n 13._o matth._n do_v right_o expound_v for_o in_o christ_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v hide_v now_o the_o divinity_n be_v the_o most_o true_a treasure_n of_o all_o good_n and_o be_v indeed_o so_o ancient_a since_o it_o be_v eternal_a and_o do_v precede_v all_o age_n as_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o former_a memory_n of_o it_o extant_a neither_o have_v this_o infinite_a treasure_n any_o proper_a lord_n to_o own_o it_o for_o itself_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n nevertheless_o this_o treasure_n of_o the_o divinity_n be_v say_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o right_n of_o they_o that_o find_v it_o because_o god_n give_v himself_o free_o to_o those_o who_o by_o sell_v all_o their_o substance_n and_o good_n earnest_o labour_v to_o acquire_v &_o purchase_v he_o it_o be_v further_a say_v to_o be_v have_v as_o it_o be_v and_o dig_v in_o a_o field_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n for_o although_o the_o divinity_n be_v every_o where_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o no_o place_n so_o proper_o and_o peculiar_o as_o in_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o which_o it_o be_v so_o unite_v as_o that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man._n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o cor_fw-la 5._o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a the_o world_n to_o himself_o and_o though_o the_o divinity_n be_v in_o no_o place_n more_o then_o in_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v so_o hide_v therein_o as_o that_o it_o be_v needful_a to_o use_v a_o light_n or_o candle_n to_o demonstrate_v and_o show_v god_n to_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o this_o light_n be_v s._n john_n baptist_n who_o as_o s._n john_n write_v cap._n 5._o be_v the_o lamp_n burn_v &_o shine_v of_o who_o david_n in_o the_o person_n of_o god_n the_o father_n do_v thus_o prophesy_v ps_n 131._o i_o have_v prepare_v a_o lamp_n unto_o my_o christ._n for_o s._n john_n baptist_n do_v manifest_a christ_n and_o do_v show_v that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n when_o he_o say_v joan._n 1._o god_n no_o man_n have_v ever_o see_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v and_o again_o he_o that_o come_v from_o heaven_n be_v above_o all_o and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o father_n love_v the_o son_n and_o he_o have_v give_v all_o thing_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v life_n everlasting_a but_o he_o that_o be_v incredulous_a to_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n remain_v upon_o he_o joan._n 3._o but_o although_o this_o burn_a and_o shine_a lamp_n do_v manifest_a christ_n open_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n nevertheless_o the_o blind_a jew_n can_v not_o at_o least_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o
divinity_n to_o be_v hide_v in_o chrisi_n for_o if_o they_o have_v know_v so_o much_o then_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v 1._o cor._n 2._o they_o will_v never_o have_v crucify_v the_o lord_n of_o glory_n who_o therefore_o be_v enlighten_v from_o god_n do_v find_v this_o treasure_n do_v hide_v it_o and_o for_o joy_n thereof_o go_v and_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v and_o buy_v the_o field_n to_o hide_v the_o treasure_n be_v find_v be_v nothing_o e●s_v but_o to_o conceal_v and_o cover_v the_o receive_v grace_n of_o god_n under_o the_o veil_n of_o humility_n and_o not_o to_o vaunt_v of_o divine_a consolation_n and_o revelation_n for_o fear_v that_o vain_a and_o airy_a glory_n do_v corrupt_v true_a glory_n therefore_o esay_n cap._n 24._o be_v accustom_v to_o say_v my_o secret_n be_v to_o myself_o and_o the_o apostle_n 2._o cor._n 12._o if_o i_o must_v needs_o glory_v it_o be_v not_o expedient_a indeed_o i_o will_v come_v to_o the_o vision_n and_o revelation_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o know_v a_o man_n in_o christ_n above_o fourteen_o year_n ago_o etc._n etc._n for_o that_o most_o remarkable_a revelation_n which_o the_o apostle_n be_v rapt_v into_o paradise_n receive_v he_o conceal_v for_o the_o space_n of_o fourteen_o year_n and_o will_v have_v conceal_v it_o but_o that_o the_o necessity_n of_o disclose_v the_o same_o force_v he_o thereto_o and_o he_o plain_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v not_o expedient_a to_o publish_v and_o make_v know_v such_o gift_n or_o privilege_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v discover_v it_o under_o a_o uncertain_a name_n well_o show_v thereby_o how_o anxious_o he_o suffer_v the_o manifestation_n thereof_o the_o like_a fall_v out_o unto_o s._n francis_n when_o the_o sacred_a print_n or_o wound_n be_v from_o above_o impress_v upon_o his_o body_n as_o s._n bonaventure_n in_o his_o life_n relate_v for_o at_o other_o time_n he_o be_v accustom_v to_o conceal_v his_o divine_a revelation_n and_o to_o say_v with_o esay_n my_o secret_n be_v to_o myself_o etc._n etc._n but_o when_o he_o see_v the_o matter_n can_v be_v conceal_v no_o long_o he_o relate_v with_o great_a fear_n the_o whole_a order_n of_o his_o vision_n to_o his_o brethren_n demand_v he_o thereof_o but_o to_o proceed_v to_o buy_v with_o joy_n that_o field_n wherein_o the_o treasure_n do_v lie_v hide_v signify_v only_o that_o he_o who_o will_v enjoy_v god_n and_o cbrist_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n aught_o to_o suffer_v in_o affection_n renounce_v and_o cast_v away_o of_o all_o temporal_a thing_n and_o to_o bequeath_v both_o himself_o and_o what_o he_o any_o way_n have_v unto_o the_o service_n and_o obedience_n of_o god_n and_o this_o not_o with_o any_o painful_a reluctation_n of_o will_n or_o necessity_n but_o with_o all_o alacrity_n and_o joy_n see_v that_o god_n love_v a_o cheerful_a giver_n 2._o cor._n 9_o but_o he_o who_o true_o know_v how_o immense_a a_o treasure_n it_o be_v to_o enjoy_v christ_n in_o the_o eternal_a country_n to_o behold_v his_o divinity_n with_o the_o eye●_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o his_o humanity_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o body_n and_o to_o participate_v of_o all_o the_o good_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n and_o to_o be_v sure_a and_o certain_a of_o so_o great_a a_o possession_n for_o all_o eternity_n will_v think_v it_o no_o great_a matter_n to_o spurn_v at_o and_o contemn_v all_o temporality_n whatsoever_o yea_o his_o own_o life_n for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o everlasting_a felicity_n witness_v to_o we_o of_o this_o point_n may_v be_v s._n ignatius_n martyr_n thus_o write_v to_o the_o roman_n fire_n the_o cross_n cruelty_n of_o beast_n cut_v asunder_o my_o body_n break_v of_o my_o bone_n a_o rend_n of_o all_o my_o member_n the_o extinguishment_n of_o all_o my_o body_n yea_o all_o the_o whip_n and_o scourge_n of_o the_o devil_n let_v shem_o full_a upon_o i_o so_o that_o i_o may_v deerue_v to_o obtain_v &_o purchase_v christ_n now_o he_o who_o out_o of_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o charity_n towards_o christ_n thus_o speak_v doubtless_o will_v little_o fear_v want_n poverty_n ignominy_n exile_n prison_n so_o that_o he_o may_v not_o lose_v that_o incomparable_a treasure_n whosever_v therefore_o earnest_o covet_v to_o gain_v the_o treasure_n of_o eternal_a life_n let_v he_o most_o serious_o think_v &_o consider_v with_o himself_o whether_o he_o be_v prepare_v with_o a_o immovable_a resolution_n to_o contemn_v &_o betrample_v under_o his_o foot_n all_o other_o good_n since_o otherwise_o neither_o a_o live_v nor_o dead_a shall_v he_o ever_o obtain_v that_o treasure_n without_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v eternal_o be_v most_o miserable_a and_o poor_a but_o i_o here_o will_v demand_v what_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o so_o many_o man_n in_o such_o heat_n of_o desire_n do_v seek_v after_o the_o treasure_n of_o gould_n and_o silver_n and_o not_o content_a to_o use_v herein_o humane_a diligence_n they_o fly_v by_o most_o execrable_a art_n to_o the_o help_n of_o the_o devil_n with_o imminent_a danger_n both_o of_o their_o reputation_n and_o life_n and_o yet_o thy_o treasure_n o_o lord_n my_o god_n so_o few_o do_v seek_v which_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o enrich_v a_o man_n and_o which_o they_o may_v easy_o purchase_v without_o labour_n charge_n or_o peril_n true_o i_o do_v see_v no_o other_o cause_o hereof_o but_o either_o want_n of_o faith_n in_o thy_o people_n or_o their_o overmuch_o negotiation_n in_o temporal_a affair_n which_o leave_v they_o no_o time_n to_o think_v and_o meditate_v of_o thy_o divine_a promise_n make_v unto_o man_n therefore_o o_o bless_a lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n and_o belief_n concern_v thy_o promise_n and_o extinguish_v our_o thirst_n in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o temporal_a riches_n for_o so_o it_o may_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o with_o great_a and_o more_o feruerous_a bent_n of_o desire_n we_o shall_v seek_v after_o thy_o treasure_n and_o find_v it_o with_o sale_n of_o all_o we_o have_v may_v resolve_v to_o purchase_v it_o of_o the_o precious_a margarite_n or_o pearl_n chap._n ii_o a_o other_o parable_n like_a to_o the_o former_a and_o which_o also_o next_z follow_v in_o s._n matthew_n cap._n 13._o be_v of_o the_o precious_a pearl_n or_o margarite_n for_o in_o that_o there_o be_v a_o treasure_n in_o this_o a_o pearl_n which_o may_v be_v esteem_v as_o a_o treasure_n in_o that_o it_o be_v needful_a by_o sell_v of_o all_o a_o man_n possess_v to_o buy_v the_o field_n in_o which_o the_o treasure_n be_v hide_v in_o this_o in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o buy_v the_o pearl_n with_o the_o charge_n and_o expense_n of_o all_o we_o have_v therefore_o it_o be_v convenient_a only_a to_o explicate_v in_o what_o point_v these_o two_o parable_n do_v differ_v they_o differ_v in_o two_o thing_n to_o wit_n that_o in_o the_o first_o a_o treasure_n be_v mention_v in_o this_o a_o pearl_n again_o that_o the_o treasure_n be_v find_v by_o chance_n whereas_o the_o pearl_n be_v diligent_o seek_v after_o by_o the_o merchant_n and_o true_o in_o this_o place_n the_o celestial_a beatitude_n or_o christ_n himself_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o pearl_n as_o s._n ambrose_n serm_n 6._o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n orat_fw-la 49._o ruffinus_n and_o other_o do_v interpret_v that_o be_v call_v the_o pearl_n in_o this_o parable_n which_o in_o the_o former_a parable_n be_v call_v a_o treasure_n to_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o eternal_a felicity_n or_o the_o vision_z whereof_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o divines_n dialect_n be_v the_o formal_a beatitude_n or_o felicity_n be_v indeed_o a_o treasure_n but_o not_o divide_v into_o several_a kind_n of_o gold_n silver_n and_o precious_a stone_n but_o be_v one_o thing_n which_o contain_v in_o itself_o the_o price_n of_o a_o infinite_a treasure_n whereas_o the_o pearl_n be_v but_o one_o only_a thing_n contain_v in_o itself_o according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o pliny_n lib_n 9_o c._n 35._o the_o perfection_n and_o height_n of_o all_o precious_a thing_n furthermore_o a_o treasure_n may_v consist_v of_o only_a money_n or_o good_n though_o in_o very_o great_a quantity_n which_o treasure_n respect_v only_a profit_n &_o not_o pleasure_n or_o outward_a pomp_n wherefore_o to_o prevent_v that_o a_o man_n do_v not_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o former_a parable_n that_o celestial_a beatitude_n be_v only_o profitable_a and_o not_o specious_a and_o honourable_a our_o lord_n do_v add_v this_o other_o parable_n of_o the_o pearl_n in_o which_o he_o teach_v that_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o our_o felicity_n be_v like_a to_o the_o pearl_n which_o beside_o the_o profit_n of_o a_o treasure_n have_v also_o in_o it_o fairness_n and_o splendour_n which_o do_v adorn_v &_o delight_v we_o may_v add_v heerto_o that_o the_o pearl_n be_v the_o symbol_n character_n
or_o sign_n of_o christ_n both_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o also_o as_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n for_o as_o the_o pearl_n be_v engender_v of_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o of_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n as_o pliny_n in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v and_o other_o do_v teach_v so_o also_o the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o his_o deity_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n of_o light_n who_o be_v a_o increated_a sun_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o creed_n light_n of_o light_n true_a god_n of_o true_a god_n and_o the_o same_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n because_o he_o be_v conceive_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n to_o conclude_v the_o pearl_n be_v white_a clear_a solid_a pure_a light_a and_o round_o in_o like_a sort_n the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n much_o more_o incomparable_o his_o divinity_n be_v white_a through_o its_o innocency_n lucid_a or_o clear_a through_o its_o wisdom_n solid_a for_o its_o constancy_n pure_a as_o be_v without_o spot_n light_n in_o regard_n of_o its_o sweetness_n and_o mildness_n round_o in_o that_o it_o be_v of_o each_o side_n perfect_a now_o the_o pearl_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o find_v by_o chance_n but_o it_o be_v seek_v after_o diligent_o by_o the_o prudent_a merchant_n neither_o do_v this_o parable_n contradict_v the_o former_a in_o which_o the_o treasure_n be_v say_v to_o be_v find_v by_o chance_n for_o both_o these_o point_n be_v true_a but_o in_o diverse_a person_n and_o therefore_o our_o lord_n even_o out_o of_o a_o divine_a prudence_n do_v adjoine_v this_o late_a parable_n to_o the_o former_a lest_o it_o may_v be_v think_v to_o happen_v to_o all_o man_n to_o light_v upon_o the_o treasure_n unexpected_o and_o casual_o for_o god_n do_v illuminate_v some_o man_n upon_o a_o sudden_a with_o singular_a or_o special_a grace_n so_o as_o they_o neither_o seek_v nor_o covet_v nor_o think_v thereof_o do_v notwithstanding_o arrive_v to_o truth_n of_o faith_n to_o a_o most_o ardent_a charity_n yea_o to_o a_o certain_a hope_n of_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n and_o these_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o find_v this_o treasure_n by_o chance_n although_o god_n not_o by_o chance_n but_o through_o his_o eternal_a providence_n do_v preordayne_v they_o to_o this_o grace_n and_o to_o future_a glory_n now_o other_o man_n god_n do_v indeed_o prevent_v with_o his_o grace_n but_o he_o do_v not_o present_o show_v to_o they_o the_o treasure_n but_o as_o it_o be_v breath_n into_o they_o a_o desire_n of_o seek_v the_o truth_n make_v they_o careful_a merchant_n and_o help_v and_o direct_v they_o until_o they_o find_v the_o precious_a pearl_n we_o may_v glass_n this_o different_a proceed_n of_o god_n in_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n austin_n s._n paul_n do_v not_o seek_v the_o true_a treasure_n which_o be_v christ_n but_o do_v persecute_v christ_n as_o a_o seducer_n and_o the_o christian_n as_o man_n seduce_v and_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o journey_n breathe_v forth_o threaten_n and_o slaughter_n against_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n christ_n do_v appear_v unto_o he_o and_o withal_o do_v blind_v the_o eye_n of_o his_o body_n that_o he_o may_v illuminate_v the_o eye_n of_o his_o hart_n and_o this_o with_o so_o great_a a_o splendour_n and_o brightness_n as_o that_o instant_o he_o become_v of_o a_o persecutor_n a_o preacher_n and_o although_o this_o by_o a_o happy_a chance_n do_v fall_v unto_o he_o yet_o that_o which_o be_v chance_n to_o s._n paul_n be_v providence_n in_o god_n for_o thus_o himself_o speak_v to_o the_o galatian_n cap._n 1._o you_o have_v hear_v of_o my_o conversation_n sometime_o in_o judaisme_n that_o above_o measure_n i_o persecute_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o expugn_v it_o and_o profit_v in_o judaisme_n above_o many_o of_o i_o equal_v in_o my_o nation_n be_v more_o abundant_o a_o emulatour_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o my_o father_n but_o when_o it_o please_v god_n that_o separate_v i_o from_o my_o mother_n womb_n and_o call_v i_o by_o his_o grace_n to_o reveal_v his_o son_n in_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v euangelize_n he_o among_o the_o gentill_n incontinent_o i_o condescend_v not_o to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o s._n paul_n even_o from_o the_o womb_n of_o his_o mother_n be_v separate_v by_o divine_a providence_n that_o he_o shall_v preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o find_v the_o precious_a pearl_n or_o the_o treasure_n in_o the_o field_n but_o the_o treasure_n do_v of_o itself_o offer_v itself_o unto_o he_o &_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v belove_v of_o he_o with_o so_o a_o inflame_a charity_n as_o that_o he_o spare_v no_o labour_n but_o expose_v himself_o to_o all_o danger_n prize_v all_o thing_n as_o dung_n so_o that_o he_o may_v gain_v christ_n phil_n 3._o but_o now_o s._n austin_n do_v tread_v contrary_a step_n to_o the_o apostle_n herein_o for_o even_o from_o his_o youth_n he_o begin_v to_o burn_v with_o desire_n of_o find_v out_o this_o precious_a pearl_n that_o be_v true_a wisdom_n &_o eternal_a felicity_n for_o when_o he_o fall_v into_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o manichee_n he_o much_o labour_v with_o himself_o in_o search_v and_o dispute_v with_o other_o how_o he_o may_v find_v the_o evangelicall_a truth_n and_o when_o as_o he_o find_v nothing_o in_o that_o sect_n but_o fabulous_a and_o lie_a narration_n h●_n almost_o despair_v of_o find_v the_o truth_n though_o he_o have_v spend_v many_o year_n in_o the_o search_n thereof_o for_o thus_o himself_o speak_v lib._n 6._o confess_v c._n 6._o i_o descend_v even_o into_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o i_o do_v distrust_n and_o despair_n of_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n yet_o it_o please_v god_n that_o at_o length_n he_o shall_v find_v out_o the_o precious_a pearl_n and_o then_o without_o any_o delay_n sell_v all_o his_o substance_n that_o be_v abandon_v the_o desire_n of_o marriage_n with_o which_o he_o be_v most_o forcible_o withhoulden_a and_o contemn_v all_o lucre_n and_o honour_n to_o which_o he_o afore_o have_v enslave_v himself_o he_o whole_o for_o ever_o after_o espouse_v himself_o to_o the_o obedience_n and_o service_n of_o god_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o first_o parable_n compare_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o a_o treasure_n find_v without_o labour_n and_o by_o chance_n and_o in_o the_o late_a parable_n resemble_v it_o to_o a_o pearl_n find_v out_o by_o the_o merchant_n with_o great_a labour_n travel_n and_o study_v now_o this_o one_o thing_n remain_v i_o mean_v that_o a_o christian_a soul_n do_v serious_o ponder_v with_o itself_o in_o the_o sight_n god_n set_v aside_o all_o other_o business_n for_o a_o time_n what_o kind_n of_o traffic_n this_o be_v how_o profitable_a and_o easy_a during_o this_o time_n and_o how_o difficult_a or_o rather_o impossible_a will_v it_o be_v if_o once_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o present_a market_n be_v let_v slip_n &_o lose_v doubtless_o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n will_v not_o pretermit_v occasion_n of_o buy_v a_o pearl_n which_o may_v be_v sell_v for_o many_o thousand_o of_o crown_n of_o gold_n and_o yet_o now_o at_o the_o present_a fair_a may_v be_v buy_v for_o one_o hundred_o only_a of_o silver_n although_o they_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o take_v up_o the_o momoney_n at_o excessive_a use_n and_o shall_v then_o the_o child_n of_o light_n be_v so_o imprudent_a and_o negligent_a as_o that_o they_o can_v be_v induce_v to_o buy_v that_o pearl_n which_o shall_v enrich_v and_o beautify_v they_o for_o all_o eternity_n when_o as_o they_o need_v not_o neither_o take_v up_o silver_n at_o use_n nor_o yet_o run_v up_o and_o down_o for_o enquiry_n of_o the_o price_n of_o the_o pearl_n but_o it_o may_v behold_v as_o sufficient_a free_o to_o give_v that_o which_o they_o have_v although_o all_o their_o substance_n arrive_v not_o to_o two_o mire_n therefore_o o_o lord_n god_n let_v thy_o light_a shine_n in_o our_o heart_n give_v to_o we_o a_o desire_n to_o know_v the_o valuable_a price_n and_o worth_n of_o this_o thy_o pearl_n and_o withal_o the_o utility_n of_o that_o price_n which_o be_v exact_v of_o we_o that_o so_o we_o may_v obtain_v the_o pearl_n add_v o_o lord_n to_o our_o mercy_n that_o thou_o will_v not_o in_o vain_a show_n to_o we_o so_o rich_a a_o pearl_n and_o thou_o who_o have_v say_v cast_v not_o your_o pearl_n before_o swine_n matth._n 7._o so_o work_v in_o we_o by_o thy_o grace_n that_o if_o at_o any_o time_n we_o have_v be_v like_o to_o swine_n in_o not_o know_v the_o dignity_n and_o worth_n of_o this_o thy_o pearl_n but_o prefer_v acorn_n and_o husk_n before_o it_o we_o may_v
thousand_o they_o expect_v not_o to_o receive_v their_o hire_n or_o wage_n that_o be_v their_o penny_n but_o the_o apostle_n the_o martyr_n and_o other_o labourer_n who_o come_v to_o the_o vineyard_n at_o the_o eleaventh_o hour_n that_o be_v as_o s._n john_n expound_v at_o the_o last_o hour_n wrought_v therein_o but_o few_o year_n and_o present_o upon_o their_o death_n enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n they_o receive_v their_o penny_n now_o how_o great_a and_o worthy_a be_v this_o grace_n that_o a_o christian_a man_n if_o himself_o wil●_n may_v through_o his_o undergo_n a_o most_o short_a labour_n ascend_v to_o that_o place_n to_o the_o which_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n for_o a_o most_o long_a time_n earnest_o desire_v to_o arrive_v therefore_o not_o without_o cause_n do_v those_o ancient_a father_n say_v with_o a_o certain_a murmur_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o signify_v rather_o admiration_n than_o complaint_n matth._n 20._o these_o last_o have_v continue_v but_o one_o hour_n and_o thou_o have_v make_v they_o equal_a to_o we_o that_o have_v bear_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o day_n and_o the_o heat_n but_o our_o lord_n do_v apologise_v and_o answer_v for_o we_o thus_o friend_n i_o do_v the●_n no_o wrong_n do_v not_o thou_o covenant_n with_o i_o for_o a_o penny_n take_v that_o be_v thy_o and_o go_v i_o will_v also_o give_v unto_o this_o last_o as_o unto_o thou_o which_o answer_n do_v not_o imply_v that_o man_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n receive_v from_o grace_n or_o favour_n and_o not_o from_o justice_n the_o same_o reward_n with_o they_o but_o it_o only_o import_v that_o they_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v great_a abundance_n of_o grace_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o in_o a_o short_a time_n they_o labour_v no_o less_o but_o rather_o more_o in_o the_o vineyard_n than_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n do_v in_o a_o long_a time_n and_o therein_o receive_v just_o the_o like_a reward_n or_o rather_o great_a certain_o the_o apostle_n labour_v but_o a_o short_a time_n yet_o they_o bring_v great_a profit_n to_o the_o vineyard_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o ever_o do_v the_o patriarch_n or_o the_o prophet_n abandon_v all_o temporality_n make_v a_o perlustration_n of_o almost_o the_o whole_a wor_n d_o and_o do_v draw_v whole_a province_n of_o heathen_n to_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n when_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n be_v there_o so_o numerous_a a_o army_n of_o martyr_n suffer_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o true_a god_n all_o torment_n &_o most_o cruel_a death_n whatsoever_o when_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v find_v so_o many_o company_n of_o holy_a virgin_n who_o follow_v the_o immaculate_a lamb_n do_v devote_v and_o render_v themselves_o in_o all_o integrity_n of_o mind_n and_o body_n to_o god_n where_o be_v there_o in_o that_o ancient_a time_n so_o many_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n who_o use_v all_o vigilancy_n and_o care_n over_o their_o flock_n most_o valorous_o by_o their_o learned_a write_n resist_v and_o oppugn_v the_o wolf_n i_o mean_v the_o heretic_n and_o heathen_n to_o be_v short_a where_o be_v then_o that_o number_n of_o hermit_n monk_n and_o other_o religious_a person_n who_o be_v virtuous_o emulous_a of_o the_o life_n of_o the_o angell●_n do_v spend_v both_o day_n and_o night_n in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n &_o prayer_n to_o he_o these_o and_o other_o like_a example_n of_o most_o eminent_a and_o remarkable_a virtue_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n in_o regard_n of_o which_o grace_n our_o lord_n do_v right_o conclude_v his_o parable_n in_o those_o word_n so_o shall_v the_o last_o be_v first_o and_o the_o first_o last_n for_o many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v that_o be_v many_o be_v call_v throughout_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o world_n to_o work_v in_o the_o vineyard_n even_o at_o the_o eleaventh_o hour_n but_o few_o be_v choose_v that_o be_v not_o few_o in_o number_n but_o that_o few_o man_n of_o one_o hour_n and_o that_o the_o last_o hour_n be_v elect_v to_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n by_o virtue_n and_o force_n whereof_o they_o make_v to_o themselves_o great_a benefit_n by_o their_o labour_a and_o receive_v in_o a_o short_a time_n most_o great_a reward_n neither_o be_v we_o to_o think_v that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v call_v at_o the_o eleaventh_o hour_n do_v receive_v the_o penny_n but_o only_o those_o who_o in_o that_o short_a time_n with_o all_o their_o force_n even_o breathles_o and_o incessant_o labour_v in_o the_o vineyard_n of_o our_o lord_n for_o there_o be_v many_o man_n who_o know_v this_o hour_n to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o a_o short_a time_n leave_v they_o do_v not_o say_v as_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v our_o life_n be_v short_a therefore_o let_v we_o labour_v courageous_o that_o so_o in_o a_o small_a time_n we_o may_v ●eap_v great_a fruit_n but_o they_o say_v with_o the_o foolish_a man_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n cap._n 2._o they_o have_v say_v think_v with_o themselves_o not_o well_o little_a and_o tedious_a be_v the_o time_n of_o our_o life_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o a_o man_n there_o be_v no_o recovery_n and_o there_o be_v none_o know_v who_o have_v return_v from_o hell_n and_o a_o little_a after_o come_v therefore_o and_o let_v we_o enjoy_v the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v let_v we_o quick_o use_v the_o creature_n as_o in_o youth_n let_v we_o fill_v ourselves_o with_o precious_a wine_n and_o ointment_n and_o let_v not_o the_o flower_n of_o our_o time_n pass_v let_v we_o crown_v ourselves_o with_o rose_n before_o they_o wither_v let_v there_o be_v no_o meadow_n which_o our_o riot_n shall_v not_o pass_v through_o let_v none_o of_o we_o be_v exempt_v from_o our_o riotousness_n every_o where_o let_v we_o leave_v sign_n of_o joy_n because_o this_o be_v our_o portion_n and_o this_o our_o lot_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o those_o who_o either_o know_v not_o god_n or_o say_v they_o know_v he_o do_v nevertheless_o deny_v he_o in_o their_o deed_n and_o work_n which_o man_n indeed_o be_v so_o many_o in_o number_n as_o even_o to_o they_o may_v be_v extend_v that_o conclusion_n many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o choose_v woe_n therefore_o be_v to_o we_o who_o be_v call_v in_o the_o last_o hour_n do_v consume_v a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o hour_n in_o play_v and_o sleep_v whereas_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o solicitous_a and_o careful_a of_o every_o little_a moment_n thereof_o as_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o suffer_v any_o one_o minute_n to_o slip_v from_o we_o idle_o and_o without_o fruit_n since_o of_o these_o moment_n all_o eternity_n of_o reward_n or_o punishment_n do_v depend_v and_o without_o all_o doubt_n by_o how_o much_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n grant_v to_o christian_n be_v great_a by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o grievous_o shall_v they_o be_v punish_v who_o receive_v that_o grace_n in_o vain_a and_o as_o of_o those_o who_o painful_o labour_v in_o the_o last_o hour_n the_o last_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o in_o receive_v of_o hire_n or_o reward_n so_o of_o those_o who_o refuse_v to_o labour_v manful_o in_o the_o last_o hour_n the_o last_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o in_o suffer_v of_o punishment_n of_o the_o talent_n and_o joy_n of_o our_o lord_n chap._n iu._n the_o four_o parable_n be_v that_o in_o the_o which_o our_o lord_n in_o s._n matthew_n cap._n 25._o speak_v of_o the_o reward_n of_o beatitude_n welfare_n thou_o good_a and_o faith_n hfull_a servant_n because_o thou_o have_v be_v faithful_a over_o few_o thing_n i_o will_v place_v thou_o over_o many_o enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n in_o which_o place_n two_o thing_n be_v promise_v to_o fayhfull_a servant_n to_o wit_n most_o ample_a power_n and_o most_o great_a &_o ineffable_a joy_n i_o will_v place_v thou_o over_o many_o thing_n and_o which_o those_o many_o thing_n be_v he_o explicate_v in_o another_o place_n when_o he_o say_v ibid._n cap._n 14._o bless_a be_v that_o servant_n who_o when_o his_o lord_n come_v shall_v find_v so_o do_v for_o over_o all_o his_o good_n he_o shall_v appoint_v he_o now_o what_o other_o thing_n be_v it_o to_o be_v appoint_v over_o all_o the_o good_n of_o our_o lord_n then_o to_o receive_v power_n over_o all_o inferior_a thing_n and_o to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o that_o empire_n &_o soveraingty_n which_o god_n have_v over_o all_o the_o universal_a wolrd_n who_o be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v how_o great_a this_o power_n be_v what_o king_n or_o emperor_n on_o earth_n can_v be_v compare_v with_o the_o least_o saint_n in_o heaven_n but_o because_o so_o great_a power_n and_o domination_n in_o man_n be_v common_o attend_v on_o with_o much_o solicitude_n care_n and_o
perturbation_n of_o mind_n therefore_o our_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v to_o alleviate_v &_o ease_v such_o suppose_a pain_n adjoin_v thereto_o enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v as_o i_o have_v make_v thou_o consort_v and_o fellow_n of_o all_o supreme_a power_n so_o also_o will_v i_o make_v thou_o partaker_n of_o all_o desire_a rest_n and_o pleasure_n the_o which_o no_o anxiety_n toil_n or_o labour_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n to_o take_v away_o or_o diminish_v certain_o how_o great_a this_o joy_n be_v which_o be_v promise_v to_o the_o just_a in_o heaven_n be_v altogether_o inexplicable_a neither_o can_v we_o know_v it_o before_o we_o have_v taste_v it_o by_o experience_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o may_v make_v some_o cohiecture_n out_o of_o three_o word_n of_o this_o very_a sentence_n that_o this_o joy_n be_v most_o great_a the_o first_o word_n be_v intra_fw-la or_o enter_v into_o it_o be_v not_o say_v let_v the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n enter_v into_o thou_o but_o contrariwise_o enter_v thou_o into_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o lord_n a_o evident_a argument_n that_o that_o joy_n be_v great_a than_o we_o be_v able_a to_o contain_v whole_o in_o ourselves_o therefore_o we_o shall_v enter_v as_o it_o be_v into_o a_o great_a sea_n of_o everlasting_a and_o divine_a joy_n which_o shall_v replenish_v we_o both_o within_o and_o without_o and_o shall_v have_v in_o itself_o a_o redundancy_n on_o all_o side_n therefore_o in_o so_o great_a a_o affluency_n of_o joy_n what_o place_n can_v be_v leave_v for_o care_n or_o sadness_n the_o second_o word_n be_v in_o gaudium_fw-la into_o the_o joy._n where_o be_v not_o promise_v this_o or_o that_o joy_n of_o this_o good_a or_o that_o good_a but_o even_o joy_v itself_o be_v absolute_o promise_v to_o wit_n pleasure_n itself_o sweetness_n itself_o contentment_n itself_o and_o how_o then_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o but_o that_o the_o whole_a soul_n shall_v even_o melt_v and_o be_v dissolve_v be_v thus_o replenish_v with_o so_o great_a a_o sweetness_n and_o the_o three_o word_n which_o do_v mighty_o exaggerate_v this_o point_n be_v domini_fw-la tui_fw-la of_o thy_o lord_n for_o we_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o a_o joy_n at_o which_o man_n or_o angel_n do_v rejoice_v but_o with_o which_o god_n himself_o in_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v infinite_a do_v rejoice_v what_o understanding_n can_v comprehend_v of_o what_o nature_n the_o joy_n of_o god_n be_v who_o know_v perfect_o his_o own_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o who_o do_v enjoy_v the_o same_o and_o rejoice_v thereat_o after_o a_o infinite_a manner_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o it_o be_v in_o thy_o power_n o_o christian_n to_o enjoy_v &_o taste_v and_o to_o have_v the_o fruition_n of_o that_o for_o ever_o the_o which_o now_o thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o conceive_v in_o thought_n if_o so_o thou_o will_v be_v a_o good_a and_o faithful_a servant_n but_o now_o let_v we_o consider_v to_o what_o man_n such_o great_a promise_n do_v belong_v to_o they_o no_o doubt_n who_o have_v be_v careful_a to_o multiply_v the_o talent_n deliver_v to_o they_o by_o god_n for_o this_o similitude_n be_v borrow_v from_o a_o rich_a man_n who_o deliver_v his_o good_n to_o his_o servant_n entrust_v one_o of_o they_o with_o five_o talent_n a_o other_o with_o two_o a_o three_o with_o one_o strict_o command_v they_o that_o by_o their_o careful_a and_o prudent_a negotiation_n they_o shall_v labour_v to_o multiply_v the_o same_o now_o what_o these_o talent_n may_v figurative_o signify_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o learned_a interpretes_n be_v various_a for_o some_o do_v by_o the_o talent_n understand_v gratiam_fw-la gratis_o datam_fw-la which_o be_v grace_n without_o any_o interueniency_n on_o our_o part_n free_o give_v other_o do_v understand_v thereby_o the_o holy_a scripture_n other_o will_v have_v the_o five_o talent_n to_o signify_v the_o knowledge_n of_o external_a thing_n which_o be_v get_v by_o the_o mediation_n of_o the_o five_o sense_n and_o the_o two_o talent_n to_o signify_v the_o understanding_n and_o the_o operation_n and_o the_o one_o talon_n alone_o to_o denote_v only_o the_o understanding_n but_o notwithstanding_o this_o their_o disparity_n of_o judgment_n they_o all_o joint_o conspire_v in_o this_o that_o to_o multiply_v the_o talent_n be_v to_o work_v well_o and_o painful_o for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o of_o other_o there_o occur_v to_o i_o another_o exposition_n not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o former_a and_o seem_v to_o be_v fit_o accommodate_v to_o all_o those_o thing_n the_o which_o our_o lord_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o talent_n and_o first_o the_o talent_n in_o this_o place_n be_v call_v the_o good_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o it_o be_v say_v he_o deliver_v his_o good_n unto_o they_o furthermore_o it_o be_v command_v that_o the_o talent_n by_o negotiation_n be_v multiply_v in_o the_o same_o kind_n five_o talent_n thou_o do_v deliver_v i_o behold_v i_o have_v gain_v other_o five_o beside_o three_o the_o talent_n be_v say_v to_o be_v give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o proper_a virtue_n and_o ability_n last_o the_o talon_n be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o naughty_a and_o slothful_a servant_n therefore_o i_o by_o the_o talent_n do_v understand_v the_o soul_n of_o faithful_a and_o pious_a man_n which_o be_v commit_v to_o the_o trust_n and_o diligence_n of_o prelate_n for_o these_o be_v true_o the_o good_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o which_o he_o do_v not_o give_v to_o we_o but_o only_o commit_v they_o to_o our_o care_n and_o multiplication_n of_o they_o therefore_o according_a hereunto_o our_o lord_n do_v not_o say_v to_o s._n peter_n feed_v thy_o sheep_n but_o my_o sheep_n joan._n 21._o other_o thing_n be_v our_o good_n though_o give_v to_o we_o by_o our_o lord_n as_o wit_n judgement_n the_o scripture_n grace_v free_o give_v &_o all_o the_o rest_n but_o faithful_a and_o pious_a soul_n our_o lord_n call_v his_o good_n his_o vineyard_n his_o family_n his_o spouse_n for_o these_o he_o come_v into_o the_o world_n for_o these_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n to_o gain_v these_o he_o send_v his_o apostle_n to_o who_o he_o say_v i_o will_v make_v you_o to_o be_v fisher_n of_o man_n matth._n 4._o furthermore_o faithful_a soul_n be_v say_v to_o be_v multiply_v in_o the_o same_o kind_n when_o the_o prelate_n by_o word_n and_o example_n convert_v sinner_n which_o thing_n s._n peter_n perform_v for_o when_o christ_n have_v commit_v in_o the_o beginning_n to_o his_o charge_n a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o faithful_a person_n when_o he_o say_v feed_v my_o sheep_n s._n peter_n upon_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n even_o by_o his_o first_o sermon_n convert_v three_o thousand_o man_n act._n 2._o and_o after_o that_o five_o thousand_o act._n 4._o and_o after_o that_o again_o many_o thousand_o more_o in_o like_a sort_n s._n gregorius_n thanmaturgus_n when_o he_o be_v first_o create_v bishop_n of_o neocasarea_n do_v find_v only_o seventeen_o faithful_a believer_n in_o that_o city_n but_o he_o so_o multiply_v this_o small_a number_n as_o that_o be_v near_o to_o his_o death_n he_o have_v leave_v before_o his_o departure_n in_o so_o populous_a a_o city_n only_o seventeen_o infidel_n or_o misbeliever_n which_o point_n s._n gregory_n nyssene_n relate_v in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o say_v thaumaturgus_n which_o he_o have_v full_o and_o diligent_o write_v but_o to_o proceed_v these_o talent_n be_v commit_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o proper_a virtue_n and_o ability_n for_o god_n who_o know_v the_o strength_n that_o be_v the_o prudence_n knowledge_n charity_n and_o fortitude_n of_o all_o man_n do_v not_o commend_v soul_n to_o any_o but_o to_o such_o who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v fit_a and_o courageous_a enough_o to_o sustain_v that_o burden_n and_o therefore_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o intrude_v and_o thirst_n himself_o into_o the_o care_n of_o soul_n especial_o into_o a_o episcopal_a charge_n except_o he_o be_v first_o call_v thereto_o by_o he_o who_o distribute_v the_o talent_n according_a to_o the_o power_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o every_o one_o since_o otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o seem_v strange_a if_o many_o do_v fall_v under_o the_o burden_n neither_o shall_v they_o find_v any_o excuse_n with_o god_n if_o they_o say_v their_o shoulder_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bear_v so_o great_a a_o burden_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v answer_v they_o who_o force_v thou_o to_o undertake_v a_o burden_n above_o thy_o strength_n be_v not_o thou_o willing_a thereto_o do_v thou_o not_o petition_v for_o it_o and_o labour_v by_o several_a mean_n and_o endeavour_n to_o obtain_v it_o therefore_o now_o suffer_v thyself_o with_o thy_o hand_n &_o foot_n bind_v together_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o exterior_a darkness_n to_o conclude_v the_o talon_n commit_v to_o the_o slothful_a servant_n be_v take_v from_o
he_o and_o this_o point_n also_o most_o apt_o agree_v with_o my_o former_a exposition_n in_o teach_v that_o the_o talent_n be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a for_o he_o that_o take_v one_o talon_n that_o be_v the_o care_n of_o his_o own_o only_a soul_n if_o he_o do_v not_o govern_v it_o right_o he_o will_v lose_v his_o own_o soul_n for_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o bondslave_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o as_o the_o bless_a do_v acquire_v and_o obtain_v the_o liberty_n of_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o the_o which_o they_o remain_v in_o all_o freedom_n where_o they_o will_v and_o do_v what_o they_o will_v so_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o reprobate_n do_v lose_v all_o liberty_n and_o be_v bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n neither_o can_v they_o walk_v where_o they_o will_v nor_o do_v what_o they_o desire_v but_o be_v force_v to_o remain_v where_o they_o will_v not_o and_o to_o do_v nothing_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o will_v and_o this_o be_v to_o lose_v a_o man_n own_o soul_n so_o as_o this_o sentence_n according_a to_o which_o by_o the_o talent_n be_v understand_v faithful_a soul_n be_v altogether_o agreeable_a to_o the_o parable_n our_o lord_n therefore_o do_v commit_v his_o talent_n to_o three_o kind_n of_o man_n to_o those_o who_o be_v perfect_a and_o such_o ought_v bishop_n to_o be_v he_o give_v five_o talent_n that_o be_v the_o charge_n of_o many_o people_n to_o be_v under_o they_o to_z other_o less_o perfect_a as_o the_o parish_n priest_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v two_o talent_n that_o be_v a_o lesser_a number_n of_o soul_n and_o such_o as_o be_v usual_o contain_v within_o one_o parish_n to_o other_o yet_o more_o weak_a and_o infirm_a which_o be_v the_o common_a people_n he_o give_v to_o every_o one_o one_o talon_n that_o be_v the_o care_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n only_o yet_o nevertheless_o such_o man_n ought_v to_o convert_v other_o man_n by_o private_a exhortation_n &_o example_n of_o a_o innocent_a life_n from_o their_o sin_n to_o the_o way_n of_o justice_n and_o so_o after_o that_o manner_n to_o multiply_v the_o talon_n deliver_v to_o he_o and_o what_o be_v say_v of_o bishop_n and_o parish_n priest_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o prince_n and_o of_o secular_a magistrate_n and_o of_o master_n of_o family_n for_o thus_o s._n austin_n write_v tract_n 51_o in_o joan._n every_o master_n or_o father_n of_o a_o house_n or_o family_n even_o by_o this_o name_n ought_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o paternal_a affection_n and_o care_n to_o his_o family_n it_o be_v his_o offiec_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o christ_n and_o for_o the_o hope_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o admonish_v teach_v exhort_v and_o correct_v they_o in_o like_a sort_n to_o exercise_v his_o benevolence_n and_o discipline_n towards_o they_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v fulfil_v and_o practice_v a_o certain_a ecclesiastical_a or_o episcopal_a duty_n or_o function_n in_o his_o own_o house_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n constantine_n the_o greae_n be_v accustom_v to_o say_v that_o himself_o be_v a_o bishop_n extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la out_o of_o the_o church_n because_o he_o be_v most_o vigilant_a as_o far_o as_o he_o can_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v preserve_v and_o propagate_v and_o yet_o he_o do_v not_o usurp_v or_o trench_v upon_o ecclesiastical_a office_n or_o order_n but_o to_o prevent_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v think_v that_o one_o only_a man_n or_o one_o only_a kind_n of_o man_n be_v reprehend_v in_o this_o parable_n because_o we_o read_v that_o he_o only_o who_o have_v but_o one_o talon_n be_v reprehend_v and_o punish_v therefore_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o our_o lord_n from_o this_o one_o will_v have_v we_o to_o understand_v the_o danger_n of_o great_a nature_n for_o as_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n in_o that_o he_o will_v reward_v those_o who_o give_v corporal_a alm_n and_o will_v punish_v such_o as_o give_v none_o we_o understand_v thereby_o great_a reward_n to_o be_v give_v to_o such_o as_o give_v spiritual_a alm_n and_o great_a to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n martyr_n and_o virgin_n exercise_v heroical_a virtue_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o thief_n perjure_a and_o sacrilegious_a person_n eat_v to_o undergo_v great_a punishment_n than_o those_o who_o do_v not_o relieve_v the_o poor_a and_o needy_a with_o alm_n even_o so_o in_o this_o place_n in_o that_o he_o who_o receive_v one_o talon_n the_o which_o he_o may_v easy_o have_v multiply_v and_o yet_o do_v not_o be_v most_o grievous_o punish_v we_o may_v learn_v that_o so_o much_o the_o more_o easy_a it_o be_v for_o bishop_n pastor_n prince_n and_o magistrate_n to_o offend_v in_o this_o kind_n by_o how_o much_o they_o do_v exercise_v a_o more_o weighty_a and_o dangerous_a function_n and_o that_o they_o be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o to_o be_v punish_v in_o the_o last_o judgement_n by_o how_o much_o the_o loss_n of_o many_o soul_n be_v great_a than_o the_o loss_n and_o overthrow_v but_o of_o only_a one_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o s._n austin_n speak_v of_o the_o danger_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a state_n or_o degree_n epist._n 147._o he_o thus_o write_v to_o valerius_n bishop_n i_o desire_v before_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o thy_o religious_a prudence_n will_v call_v to_o mind_n nothing_o in_o this_o life_n and_o especial_o at_o this_o present_a be_v more_o easy_a and_o more_o acceptable_a to_o man_n than_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n priest_n or_o deacon_n if_o they_o exercise_v their_o authority_n though_o but_o negligent_o or_o slight_o but_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n nothing_o be_v more_o fearful_a miserable_a or_o damnable_a in_o like_a sort_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o lif●_n and_o particular_o in_o these_o day_n more_o hard_a laborious_a perilous_a than_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o with_o god_n nothing_o more_o bless_v and_o happy_a if_o so_o we_o serve_v in_o that_o war_n as_o our_o emperor_n &_o general_n command_v us._n thus_o s._n austin_n who_o write_v further_o of_o this_o very_a argument_n through_o all_o that_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o aforesaid_a valerius_n bishop_n as_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n will_v with_o attention_n and_o reflection_n upon_o themselves_o read_v the_o same_o especial_o such_o man_n who_o rash_o aspire_v to_o the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n and_o when_o they_o have_v obtain_v what_o they_o desire_v and_o find_v what_o they_o have_v seek_v for_o do_v either_o forsake_v their_o flock_n or_o be_v busy_v with_o other_o affair_n do_v trouble_v their_o thought_n with_o nothing_o less_o then_o with_o the_o care_n of_o increase_v the_o number_n of_o pious_a and_o faithful_a christian_n true_o the_o shepherd_n upon_o the_o night_n of_o the_o birth_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o prince_n of_o all_o shepherd_n do_v watch_v all_o the_o night_n over_o their_o flock_n and_o if_o this_o be_v do_v upon_o a_o flock_n void_a of_o reason_n by_o those_o who_o figure_n out_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n how_o much_o more_o than_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o pastor_n for_o their_o sheep_n endue_v with_o reason_n for_o who_o christ_n himself_o when_o he_o be_v conversant_a upon_o earth_n do_v watch_v whole_a night_n and_o if_o the_o patriarch_n jacob_n waste_v himself_o away_o with_o such_o labour_n for_o the_o care_n he_o have_v of_o the_o sheep_n of_o laban_n his_o father_n in_o law_n as_o that_o he_o say_v day_n and_o night_n be_v i_o parch_v with_o heat_n and_o with_o frost_n and_o sleep_n do_v fly_v from_o my_o eye_n what_o indefatigable_a pain_n than_o ought_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n to_o endure_v and_o if_o the_o devil_n as_o a_o roar_a lion_n go_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v devour_v be_v it_o not_o then_o fit_a that_o a_o good_a pastor_n shall_v also_o daily_o go_v about_o seek_v who_o he_o may_v free_v and_o set_v at_o liberty_n but_o here_o it_o may_v be_v urge_v that_o the_o business_n &_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o a_o man_n be_v pastor_n may_v sometime_o force_v he_o to_o leave_v his_o flock_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o if_o such_o necessitud_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o end_n in_o a_o short_a time_n that_o then_o a_o short_a leave_v of_o the_o flock_n be_v pardonable_a otherwise_o i_o say_v let_v great_a negotiation_n be_v prefer_v before_o lesser_a and_o such_o as_o be_v great_a to_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o pastor_n himself_o whereas_o the_o lesser_a may_v be_v undertake_v by_o some_o other_o for_o if_o business_n do_v force_v a_o man_n to_o depart_v from_o his_o flock_n then_o great_a business_n yea_o even_o bloody_a war_n do_v force_v a_o man_n not_o to_o
of_o david_n psal_n 111._o he_o distribute_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a his_o justice_n remain_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o those_o be_v he●r_o say_v to_o be_v weak_a &_o feeble_a who_o do_v not_o confide_v and_o trust_v in_o their_o own_o force_n nor_o glory_n in_o their_o own_o strength_n the_o blind_a be_v those_o who_o true_o believe_v those_o thing_n they_o see_v not_o especial_o touch_v the_o reward_n of_o the_o virtuous_a and_o punishmnent_n of_o the_o wicked_a for_o who_o assure_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o the_o reward_n of_o the_o just_a be_v most_o great_a and_o sempiternal_a and_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o malignant_a &_o wicked_a most_o rigorous_a and_o interminable_a these_o man_n do_v not_o lie_v grovel_v upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o do_v they_o much_o prize_n any_o thing_n which_o ●s_v under_o the_o moon_n but_o there_o their_o heart_n be_v fix_v where_o be_v true_a joy_n to_o conclude_v those_o man_n be_v happy_o lame_a and_o may_v most_o hopeful_o aspire_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o right_a foot_n be_v much_o long_o than_o the_o least_o that_o be_v who_o affection_n towards_o god_n and_o everlasting_a beatitude_n be_v far_o great_a than_o their_o sinister_a affection_n and_o desire_n towards_o their_o own_o flesh_n and_o temporal_a good_n or_o pleasure_n but_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o great_a master_n of_o the_o house_n against_o those_o who_o inconsiderar_o &_o foolish_o contemn_v his_o supper_n thus_o than_o he_o say_v i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o none_o of_o those_o man_n that_o be_v invite_v shall_v taste_v of_o my_o supper_n for_o our_o lord_n well_o know_v that_o it_o shall_v fall_v out_o within_o a_o short_a time_n that_o those_o who_o be_v invite_v and_o contemn_v and_o slight_v future_a good_n as_o vain_a their_o soul_n even_o cleave_v and_o fasten_v to_o present_a benefit_n shall_v after_o the_o dissolution_n of_o their_o body_n and_o after_o their_o departure_n from_o all_o worldly_a matter_n even_o hunger_n after_o that_o supper_n through_o a_o incredible_a desire_n for_o as_o the_o prophet_n david_n speak_v psal_n 58._o they_o will_v return_v at_o evening_n and_o they_o shall_v suffer_v f●mine_n even_o as_o dog_n and_o shall_v comp●sse_v the_o city_n then_o at_o the_o evening_n the_o day_n of_o this_o present_a life_n be_v end_v they_o shall_v return_v and_o acknowledge_v their_o folly_n when_o their_o repentance_n shall_v be_v unprofitable_a and_o they_o shall_v suffer_v hunger_n like_o ravenous_a dog_n and_o they_o shall_v encompass_v the_o city_n of_o our_o lord_n if_o perchance_o they_o may_v be_v suffer_v but_o to_o feed_v only_o upon_o the_o crumb_n of_o that_o supper_n but_o that_o sentence_n stand_v unalterable_a and_o irrevocable_a none_o of_o th●se_a man_n shall_v taste_v of_o my_o supper_n o_o christian_n soul_n that_o thou_o do_v but_o know_v what_o it_o be_v to_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o my_o supper_n or_o that_o thou_o can_v possible_o conceive_v how_o great_a the_o hunger_n of_o reprobate_a sinner_n shall_v be_v and_o of_o how_o sweet_a a_o meat_n they_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o deprive_v and_o what_o they_o will_v give_v that_o they_o may_v but_o taste_v of_o that_o which_o they_o shall_v covet_v most_o ardent_o but_o they_o shall_v gain_v nothing_o though_o they_o have_v the_o whole_a world_n at_o their_o command_n and_o though_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o renounce_v and_o disclaim_v from_o it_o with_o all_o promptitude_n of_o mind_n now_o then_o since_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o let_v we_o return_v from_o our_o sin_n while_o we_o have_v time_n while_o the_o day_n last_v and_o while_o our_o penance_n and_o repentance_n be_v fruitful_a and_o profitable_a now_o let_v we_o hunger_n after_o that_o most_o sweet_a supper_n let_v we_o suffer_v famine_n for_o it_o not_o as_o unclean_a and_o greedy_a dog_n who_o in_o eat_v think_v nothing_o but_o of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o their_o taste_n and_o belly_n but_o as_o man_n endue_v with_o reason_n let_v we_o hunger_n after_o the_o meat_n of_o eternal_a l●fe_n the_o bread_n of_o angel_n yea_o that_o hide_a manna_n which_o no_o man_n know_v but_o he_o that_o receave_v and_o which_o god_n himself_o enjoy_v from_o all_o and_o for_o all_o eternity_n by_o this_o mean_n we_o shall_v so_o live_v in_o this_o our_o banishment_n as_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o love_v the_o same_o but_o shall_v most_o earnest_o covet_v and_o even_o breath_n after_o our_o heavenly_a country_n to_o the_o which_o after_o we_o be_v once_o arrive_v we_o shall_v have_v no_o need_n to_o compass_v about_o the_o city_n but_o we_o may_v enter_v by_o the_o open_a gate_n and_o be_v free_o admit_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n we_o may_v feed_v and_o satiate_v ourselves_o upon_o most_o please_a meat_n and_o drink_v that_o be_v upon_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n and_o water_n of_o wisdom_n of_o the_o marriage_n and_o of_o the_o wise_a and_o foolish_a virgin_n chap._n vi_o the_o last_o parable_n be_v that_o which_o resemble_v the_o felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o a_o kingly_a marriage_n to_o the_o which_o be_v invite_v ten_o virgin_n of_o which_o number_n five_o be_v foolish_a and_o five_o prudent_a and_o first_o be_v to_o be_v explicate_v what_o the_o bridegroom_n be_v what_o the_o bride_n or_o spouse_n next_o be_v to_o be_v show_v how_o great_a a_o good_a be_v intimate_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o marriage_n last_o what_o be_v require_v that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o come_v to_o so_o infinite_a and_o inestimable_a a_o good_n and_o first_o it_o be_v not_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o bridegroom_n here_o be_v christ._n for_o this_o s._n ●ohn_n baptist_n in_o express_a word_n affirm_v when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o have_v the_o bride_n be_v the_o bridegroom_n but_o the_o friend_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n that_o stand_v and_o hear_v he_o rejoice_v with_o joy_n for_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o bridegroom_n joan._n 3._o the_o same_o do_v our_o lord_n himself_o insinuate_v in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o king_n who_o make_v a_o marriage_n for_o his_o son_n and_o the_o same_o also_o the_o apostle_n most_o evident_o confirm_v when_o he_o say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n 2._o cor._n 11._o i_o have_v despous●d_v you_o to_o one_o man_n to_o present_v you_o a_o chaste_a virgin_n to_o christ._n to_o be_v short_a s._n john_n in_o his_o apocalyps_n signify_v the_o same_o thus_o say_v cap._n 19_o let_v we_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v and_o give_v glory_n unto_o he_o because_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v come_v and_o the_o bride_n have_v prepare_v herself_o and_o again_o bless_a be_v they_o who_o be_v call_v to_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n now_o concern_v the_o bride_n or_o spouse_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o by_o she_o be_v mean_v the_o church_n for_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o epist_n e_o to_o the_o ephesian_n cap._n 5._o evident_o say_v as_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o christ_n so_o also_o woman_n to_o their_o husband_n in_o all_o thing_n husband_n love_v your_o wyve_n as_o christ_n also_o love_v he_o church_n and_o deliver_v himself_o for_o it_o and_o after_o again_o for_o this_o cause_n shall_v man_n leave_v father_n and_o mother_n and_o shall_v cleave_v unto_o his_o wife_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n this_o be_v a_o great_a sacrament_n but_o i_o speak_v in_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o church_n but_o although_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o faithful_a be_v say_v to_o be_v son_n of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n after_o a_o certain_a miner_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n do_v beget_v they_o to_o christ_n nevertheless_o because_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o company_n of_o the_o fa●thfull_a therefore_o all_o faithful_a soul_n be_v so_o many_o particular_a spouse_n as_o the_o church_n itself_o be_v the_o universal_a spouse_n for_o she_o do_v not_o untrue_o thus_o celebrate_v the_o dignity_n of_o virgin_n veni_fw-la sponsa_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n come_v thou_o spouse_n of_o christ_n receive_v the_o crown_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v prepare_v for_o thou_o for_o all_o eternity_n and_o although_o the_o holy_a virgin_n after_o a_o peculiar_a manner_n be_v call_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o refuse_v carnal_a wedlock_n that_o they_o may_v spiritual_o espouse_v themselves_o on_o y_o unto_o christ_n nevertheless_o other_o christian_a soul_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n since_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v betroth_v to_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o unite_v by_o charity_n do_v earnest_o thirst_v after_o a_o spiritual_a consummation_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n now_o if_o one_o can_v comprehend_v or_o but_o worthy_o imagine_v how_o great_a a_o good_a it_o be_v for_o a_o
noise_n or_o watchword_n shall_v be_v hear_v behold_v the_o bridegroom_n commetg_n go_v you_o forth_o to_o meet_v he_o math._n 25._o they_o with_o incredible_a joy_n may_v present_o run_v to_o meet_v he_o and_o enter_v into_o the_o marriage_n place_n with_o he_o but_o woe_n to_o they_o who_o be_v forgetful_a of_o so_o great_a a_o business_n and_o be_v deaf_a to_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a srcipture_n &_o who_o have_v their_o lamp_n put_v forth_o be_v find_v sleep_v and_o thereby_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o most_o please_a and_o most_o delightful_a marriage_n they_o shall_v in_o vain_a cry_n out_o lord_n lord_n open_a to_o us._n matth._n 25._o of_o the_o price_n or_o reward_n chap._n vii_o the_o parabolicall_a name_n which_o do_v occur_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v explicate_v it_o remain_v that_o we_o unfold_v the_o name_n use_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n which_o be_v bravium_fw-la a_o prize_n or_o reward_n &_o corona_n a_o crown_n of_o bra●ium_n or_o prize_n the_o apostle_n thus_o then_o speak_v they_o that_o run_v in_o the_o race_n all_o do_v run_v indeed_o but_o one_o receave_v the_o prize_n so_o run_v you_o that_o you_o may_v obtain_v and_o that_o in_o this_o place_n by_o the_o word_n prize_n or_o reward_v the_o celestial_a beatitude_n be_v understand_v the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o philippian_n cap._n 3._o saying_n forget_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v behind_o but_o stretch_v forth_o myself_o to_o those_o that_o be_v before_o i_o pursue_v unto_o the_o mark_n to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o supernal_a vocation_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n therefore_o we_o see_v there_o be_v a_o prize_n or_o reward_n in_o heaven_n to_o the_o which_o god_n do_v call_v we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n now_o although_o the_o prize_n which_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n be_v accustom_v to_o propose_v be_v of_o no_o extraordinary_a value_n or_o worth_n notwithstanding_o the_o celestial_a prize_n must_v of_o necessity_n in_o every_o respect_n be_v of_o great_a estimation_n and_o this_o whether_o thou_o consider_v god_n who_o do_v propose_v the_o prize_n he_o be_v of_o infinite_a power_n and_o magnificence_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n thus_o speak_v psal_n 8._o thy_o magnificency_n have_v ascend_v above_o the_o heaven_n or_o else_o the_o person_n that_o do_v run_v and_o strive_v to_o who_o the_o prize_n be_v set_v forth_o who_o be_v his_o son_n and_o the_o brethren_n of_o christ_n who_o doubtless_o the_o king_n their_o father_n will_v not_o have_v invite_v to_o run_v if_o the_o prize_n or_o reward_n be_v not_o of_o that_o worth_n and_o dignity_n as_o that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v worthy_o desire_v and_o covet_v it_o but_o it_o import_v mu●h_o to_o show_v what_o it_o be_v to_o run_v for_o the_o prize_n and_o with_o what_o art_n and_o skill_n we_o may_v so_o run_v as_o we_o may_v win_v or_o obtain_v the_o same_o to_o run_v for_o the_o prize_n be_v entire_o to_o observe_v and_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n for_o stadium_n or_o a_o ra●e_n here_o signify_v the_o law_n of_o god_n even_o as_o david_n witness_v in_o those_o word_n ps_n 118._o bless_a be_v the_o immaculate_a in_o the_o way_n which_o walk_v in_o the_o law_n of_o our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n i_o run_v the_o way_n of_o thy_o commandment_n when_o thou_o do_v dilate_v my_o hart_n therefore_o they_o who_o run_v the_o way_n of_o the_o commandment_n do_v run_v in_o a_o race_n for_o a_o prize_n or_o reward_n to_o proceed_v the_o skill_n of_o run_v so_o as_o that_o we_o may_v arrive_v to_o and_o obtain_v the_o prize_n comprehend_v three_o document_n the_o first_o be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o decline_v or_o depart_v any_o way_n from_o the_o race_n for_o he_o who_o leave_v the_o race_n although_o he_o may_v run_v speedy_o yet_o he_o shall_v never_o gain_v the_o prize_n since_o not_o to_o the_o prize_n or_o reward_n but_o to_o some_o other_o uncertain_a scope_n he_o direct_v his_o course_n the_o which_o error_n the_o apostle_n testifi_v that_o he_o diligent_o avoid_v say_v 1._o cor._n 11._o i_o do_v so_o run_v not_o as_o it_o be_v at_o a_o uncertain_a thing_n what_o then_o be_v it_o to_o run_v out_o of_o the_o place_n of_o the_o race_n it_o be_v not_o to_o run_v in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o commandment_n but_o in_o run_v to_o decline_v either_o to_o the_o right_n or_o left_a hand_n to_o instance_n this_o the_o law_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o levit._fw-la 19_o who_o so_o love_v his_o neighbour_n as_o himself_o run_v in_o the_o race_n and_o run_v for_o the_o prize_n but_o who_o so_o passionate_o and_o vehement_o love_v his_o neighbour_n as_o that_o for_o his_o sake_n he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o offend_v god_n thus_o make_v of_o a_o man_n a_o idol_n this_o man_n decline_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n and_o run_v out_o of_o the_o race_n run_v not_o for_o the_o prize_n but_o for_o some_o uncertain_a thing_n and_o by_o how_o much_o he_o more_o swift_o run_v in_o heap_v benefit_n and_o favour_n upon_o that_o person_n who_o he_o have_v erect_v to_o himself_o as_o a_o idol_n so_o much_o the_o more_o he_o err_v and_o further_o depart_v from_o the_o prize_n or_o reward_n but_o he_o who_o less_o love_v his_o neighbour_n than_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v as_o when_o he_o see_v he_o to_o be_v oppress_v with_o want_n and_o penury_n and_o yet_o shut_v his_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n and_o commiseration_n from_o he_o as_o s._n john_n speak_v this_o man_n stray_v to_o the_o left_a hand_n and_o neither_o do_v he_o run_v in_o the_o race_n neither_o run_v he_o for_o the_o prize_n although_o many_o other_o good_a work_n he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n as_o ourselves_o that_o be_v we_o ought_v so_o to_o bear_v ourselves_o towards_o our_o neighbour_n as_o we_o expect_v our_o neighbour_n shall_v comport_v and_o bear_v himself_o towards_o we_o and_o this_o be_v to_o love_v our_o neighbour_n neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o ourselves_o for_o thus_o do_v our_o lord_n god_n who_o give_v this_o precept_n explicate_v the_o same_o math._n 7._o luc._n 6._o and_o what_o i_o have_v here_o speak_v of_o love_n of_o our_o neighbour_n be_v a_o affirmative_a commandment_n the_o same_o we_o may_v speak_v of_o negative_a commandment_n for_o who_o steal_v another_o man_n good_n decline_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o that_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o steal_v and_o stray_v from_o the_o race_n but_o he_o who_o do_v not_o steal_v another_o man_n good_n but_o make_v profusion_n and_o waist_n of_o his_o own_o substance_n and_o state_n such_o a_o one_o decline_v towards_o the_o left_a hand_n &_o in_o like_a sort_n go_v out_o of_o the_o race_n for_o a_o just_a man_n who_o only_o remain_v in_o the_o race_n do_v no_o less_o depart_v from_o the_o race_n if_o he_o violent_o take_v other_o man_n good_n as_o if_o he_o do_v vain_o waste_v his_o own_o because_o the_o virtue_n of_o liberality_n which_o belong_v to_o justice_n be_v encompass_v with_o two_o opposite_a vice_n be_v extreme_n to_o wit_n avarice_n and_o effusion_n or_o prodigality_n the_o sum_n and_o conclusion_n of_o all_o this_o be_v that_o he_o who_o will_v remain_v in_o the_o race_n ought_v altogether_o to_o avoid_v mortal_a sin_n another_o document_n be_v that_o he_o who_o desire_v to_o obtain_v the_o prize_n do_v run_v swift_o and_o constant_o he_o run_v swift_o or_o speedy_o who_o with_o a_o ardent_a and_o feruerous_a will_n keep_v the_o precept_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n psal_n 111._o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v our_o lord_n he_o shall_v have_v great_a delight_n in_o his_o commandment_n as_o also_o of_o that_o other_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o spirit_n fervent_a serve_v our_o lord_n rom._n 12._o he_o run_v constant_o who_o be_v never_o weary_a with_o run_v nor_o ever_o cease_v from_o run_v know_v that_o it_o be_v write_v he_o that_o persever_v unto_o the_o end_n shall_v be_v save_v matth._n 10._o and_o true_o these_o two_o action_n i_o mean_v to_o run_v speedy_o and_o not_o to_o be_v weary_a or_o not_o to_o intermit_v run_v seem_v to_o be_v mere_a contrary_n and_o hardly_o compatible_a together_o for_o he_o who_o run_v speedy_o be_v quick_o tire_v but_o he_o who_o will_v not_o be_v weary_v run_v a_o slow_a space_n and_o with_o moderate_a gate_n persevere_v in_o his_o run_n this_o thing_n be_v true_a and_o therefore_o few_o they_o be_v who_o do_v arrive_v and_o gain_v the_o prize_n or_o reward_n for_o it_o be_v most_o necessary_a that_o he_o who_o covet_v to_o gain_v the_o prize_n do_v run_v speedy_o and_o incessant_o
2._o we_o after_o consider_v the_o same_o felicity_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n or_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n and_o there_o also_o we_o find_v no_o small_a difficulty_n because_o those_o who_o be_v citizen_n of_o this_o world_n can_v be_v citizen_n among_o the_o saint_n for_o it_o be_v most_o hard_a to_o live_v in_o the_o world_n and_o not_o to_o be_v of_o the_o world_n 3._o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o consider_v the_o same_o felicity_n under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n in_o the_o which_o there_o be_v many_o mansion_n and_o we_o advertise_v that_o the_o port_n or_o gate_n of_o this_o house_n be_v most_o straight_o and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v penetrate_v or_o enter_v into_o without_o great_a labour_n 4._o four_o we_o do_v consider_v the_o same_o place_n of_o beatitude_n under_o the_o name_n of_o paradise_n but_o with_o all_o we_o consider_v with_o how_o high_a a_o price_n not_o of_o gold_n or_o silver_n but_o of_o tear_n and_o blood_n our_o lord_n himself_o the_o martyr_n confessor_n &_o all_o the_o saint_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n do_v buy_v this_o paradise_n for_o we_o read_v luc._n 24._o christ_n ought_v to_o suffer_v and_o so_o to_o enter_v into_o his_o glory_n 5._o in_o the_o five_o place_n we_o consider_v the_o same_o felicity_n under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o treasure_n hide_v in_o a_o field_n and_o we_o no_o less_o show_v that_o this_o treasure_n can_v not_o be_v possess_v of_o he_o that_o find_v it_o except_o for_o the_o purchase_n thereof_o he_o do_v sell_v all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v matth._n 13._o 6._o six_o we_o consider_v the_o same_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o precious_a pearl_n or_o margarite_n for_o the_o obtain_n whereof_o the_o buyar_n also_o aught_o to_o spend_v all_o the_o good_n he_o have_v that_o so_o he_o may_v purchase_v the_o same_o 7._o seaventh_o we_o consider_v the_o same_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o daily_a penny_n which_o be_v not_o give_v but_o only_o to_o such_o who_o labour_n in_o the_o vineyard_n diligent_o and_o daily_o 8._o eight_o we_o consider_v the_o same_o under_o the_o title_n or_o name_n of_o a_o great_a supper_n and_o we_o see_v that_o those_o be_v not_o repute_v worthy_a of_o that_o supper_n who_o affection_n be_v enthrall_v unto_o temporal_a benefit_n and_o pleasure_n 9_o nine_o we_o have_v consider_v the_o same_o under_o the_o appellation_n of_o the_o joy_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o which_o they_o only_o be_v admit_v who_o with_o great_a pain_n &_o labour_n do_v multiply_v the_o talent_n deliver_v unto_o they_o such_o other_o as_o do_v not_o perform_v the_o same_o be_v cast_v into_o utter_a darkness_n 10._o ten_o we_o consider_v the_o same_o under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o princely_a marriage_n from_o the_o which_o a●l_v those_o be_v exclude_v who_o be_v give_v to_o sloth_n and_o idleness_n and_o who_o do_v not_o daily_o watch_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o good_a work_n and_o expectation_n of_o the_o celestial_a bridegroom_n 11._o in_o the_o eleaventh_o place_n we_o consider_v the_o same_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o prize_n or_o reward_n which_o they_o only_o take_v hold_v of_o who_o do_v run_v in_o the_o race_n towards_o the_o prize_n speedy_o and_o constant_o and_o this_o not_o without_o great_a ●oyle_n and_o labour_n 12._o in_o the_o twelve_o &_o last_o place_n we_o do_v consider_v it_o under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o crown_n which_o they_o only_o do_v deserve_v who_o most_o courageous_o in_o fight_n do_v overcome_v their_o enemy_n now_o what_o way_n soever_o thou_o do_v turn_v thyself_o and_o under_o what_o name_n soever_o thou_o do_v consider_v eternal_a felicity_n thou_o shall_v find_v that_o it_o can_v be_v obtain_v except_o in_o pursuit_n thereof_o thou_o do_v labour_n withal_o thy_o force_n both_o of_o mind_n and_o body_n therefore_o he_o who_o desire_v to_o become_v bless_v which_o no_o man_n if_o he_o be_v in_o his_o wit_n but_o wish_v to_o be_v let_v he_o shake_v off_o all_o drowsyne_n and_o sloth_n let_v he_o labour_v and_o sweat_v for_o the_o gain_n of_o so_o great_a a_o reward_n by_o do_v of_o good_a work_n and_o suffer_v of_o evil_n and_o let_v he_o not_o prefer_v any_o temporal_a affair_n before_o this_o so_o great_a and_o only_o necessary_a business_n and_o let_v he_o ever_o retain_v in_o memory_n those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n barnabas_n by_o many_o tribulation_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n act._n 14._o finis_fw-la a_o appendix_n or_o short_a discourse_n of_o the_o torment_n of_o hell_n take_v out_o of_o another_o spiritual_a book_n of_o the_o foresaid_a card._n bellarmine_n entitle_v of_o the_o mourn_a of_o the_o dove_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 2._o the_o translator_n to_o the_o reader_n the_o common_a axiom_n in_o philosophy_n be_v that_o contrary_n compare_v one_o to_o the_o other_o do_v afford_v a_o great_a illustration_n and_o do_v imprint_v in_o the_o understanding_n a_o more_o markable_a difference_n and_o disparity_n between_o they_o which_o consideration_n have_v cause_v i_o now_o after_o the_o former_a translation_n of_o the_o eternal_a felicity_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n to_o adjoine_v hereunto_o as_o a_o appendix_n a_o brief_a discourse_n of_o the_o everlasting_a misery_n of_o damn_a soul_n and_o of_o their_o torment_n in_o hell_n translate_v out_o of_o another_o spiritual_a book_n of_o the_o learned_a bellarmine_n entitle_v de_fw-fr gemitu_fw-la columbae_fw-la by_o which_o mean_v the_o grievousnes_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n hereafter_o declare_v may_v the_o more_o stir_v up_o the_o christian_a reader_n to_o be_v solicitous_a in_o avoid_v the_o same_o pain_n and_o thereby_o beget_v a_o great_a desire_n in_o he_o of_o gain_v the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n there_o be_v but_o two_o land_v place_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o all_o eternity_n after_o its_o departure_n from_o the_o body_n and_o these_o two_o be_v heaven_n and_o hell_n either_o heaven_n or_o hell_n must_v be_v its_o lot_n there_o be_v no_o medium_fw-la between_o they_o a_o man_n can_v lose_v the_o one_o and_o yet_o avoid_v the_o other_o this_o then_o be_v a_o most_o assure_a verity_n and_o see_v heaven_n be_v make_v for_o man_n and_o hell_n for_o the_o devil_n why_o will_v man_n so_o much_o trench_n as_o i_o may_v say_v upon_o the_o devil_n right_a as_o to_o share_v with_o he_o in_o his_o unfortunate_a inheritance_n and_o to_o remain_v with_o he_o in_o everlasting_a fire_n and_o so_o become_v the_o vessel_n of_o god_n wrath_n rather_o than_o to_o seek_v their_o own_o design_a inheritance_n of_o heaven_n unto_o the_o which_o man_n after_o his_o baptism_n be_v bear_v heir_n well_o we_o be_v man_n and_o therefore_o endue_v with_o freedom_n of_o will_n and_o consequent_o with_o freedom_n of_o election_n and_o it_o be_v engraft_v in_o man_n even_o natural_o to_o desire_v what_o be_v good_a and_o propitious_a as_o also_o to_o decline_v from_o what_o be_v domageable_a and_o evil_a how_o then_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o most_o man_n will_v needs_o cease_v to_o be_v themselves_o and_o in_o a_o most_o retrogade_n manner_n will_v choose_v eternity_n of_o torment_n before_o eternity_n of_o joy_n the_o daily_a upbraid_v of_o the_o infernal_a spirit_n before_o the_o continual_a society_n and_o familiarity_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a angel_n and_o saint_n the_o enemy_n of_o man_n before_o the_o creator_n of_o man_n the_o devil_n before_o god_n &_o hell_n before_o heaven_n o_o most_o deplorable_a bewitch_a and_o enchantment_n if_o any_o of_o you_o idolatour_n of_o this_o world_n be_v put_v to_o his_o choice_n whether_o he_o will_v be_v create_v a_o great_a prince_n or_o potentate_n live_v in_o all_o regality_n and_o supreme_a soveraingty_n or_o to_o become_v a_o bondslave_n for_o ever_o and_o to_o suffer_v daily_a torment_n and_o racking_n he_o will_v not_o doubt_v present_o dispatch_v the_o election_n and_o choose_v the_o better_a here_o then_o the_o choice_n be_v give_v you_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o prophet_n josue_n c._n 24._o whether_o after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n by_o your_o virtuous_a life_n you_o will_v reign_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n and_o so_o participate_v of_o all_o the_o joy_n thereof_o or_o through_o your_o wickedness_n lie_v fast_o bind_v hand_n and_o foot_n in_o hell_n there_o suffer_v everlasting_a torment_n and_o conflagration_n of_o fire_n where_o then_o by_o your_o underualew_v of_o heaven_n as_o most_o of_o you_o do_v be_v your_o judgement_n where_o be_v that_o light_n of_o understanding_n which_o the_o evangelist_n say_v do_v illuminate_v every_o man_n but_o alas_o it_o be_v darken_v or_o rather_o extinct_a yea_o so_o whole_o extinct_a as_o that_o for_o want_n of_o your_o true_a use_n thereof_o through_o your_o own_o negligence_n
diverse_a of_o you_o be_v to_o be_v send_v and_o relegated_a into_o utter_a darkness_n for_o all_o eternity_n where_o shall_v be_v nothing_o but_o weep_v and_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n matth._n 22._o &_o 25._o most_o man_n i_o say_v be_v so_o whole_o drown_v in_o the_o pursuit_n of_o worldly_a benefit_n and_o pleasure_n as_o that_o it_o hide_v from_o they_o all_o true_a consideration_n of_o their_o soul_n spiritual_a good_n o_o blindness_n of_o man_n nature_n woe_n therefore_o be_v to_o those_o who_o breathe_v nothing_o but_o earth_n and_o dunghill-pleasure_n woe_n woe_n to_o those_o who_o through_o their_o greedy_a thirst_n of_o these_o trifle_n sleight_n or_o rather_o contemn_v the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n but_o woe_n woe_n woe_n be_v to_o all_o such_o who_o not_o only_o through_o their_o inordinate_a concupiscence_n and_o affection_n of_o float_v and_o transitory_a thing_n neglect_v the_o joy_n of_o heaven_n but_o with_o all_o by_o their_o sinful_a life_n do_v incur_v the_o just_a indignation_n of_o he_o who_o be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o justice_n &_o revenge_n psal_n 46._o and_o thereby_o purchase_v to_o themselves_o insufferable_a torment_n and_o irrevocable_a damnation_n therefore_o all_o those_o who_o be_v thus_o blind_v i_o remit_v unto_o the_o read_n of_o what_o immediate_o follow_v in_o which_o they_o may_v glass_n their_o own_o future_a calamitous_a state_n but_o let_v they_o read_v it_o with_o horror_n and_o fear_n as_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o business_n require_v that_o so_o to_o speak_v with_o s._n bernard_n they_o may_v true_o fear_v death_n fear_v judgement_n fear_v hell_n lib._n de_fw-la primordijs_fw-la medijs_fw-la &_o novissimis_fw-la nostris_fw-la the_o word_n of_o learned_a cardinal_n be_v these_o have_v above_o consider_v of_o malum_fw-la culpae_fw-la the_o evil_a of_o the_o offence_n we_o will_v now_o take_v into_o our_o consideration_n malum_fw-la poenae_fw-la the_o evil_a of_o the_o punishment_n due_a for_o the_o say_a offence_n or_o prevarication_n for_o this_o consideration_n may_v well_o be_v call_v the_o second_o fountain_n of_o tear_n and_o although_o the_o fear_n and_o grief_n of_o the_o punishment_n be_v less_o perfect_a than_o the_o fear_n and_o grief_n of_o the_o offence_n notwithstanding_o both_o kind_n of_o this_o fear_n and_o grief_n be_v good_a and_o most_o profitable_a and_o the_o one_o of_o they_o become_v a_o mean_n to_o beget_v the_o other_o certain_o our_o good_a lord_n and_o master_n christ_n jesus_n say_v in_o express_a word_n luc._n 12._o be_v not_o afraid_a of_o they_o that_o kill_v the_o body_n and_o after_o this_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v but_o i_o will_v show_v you_o who_o you_o shall_v fear_v fear_v he_o who_o after_o he_o have_v kill_v have_v power_n to_o cast_v into_o hell_n yea_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o fear_v he_o and_o again_o touch_v weep_a christ_n thus_o speak_v unto_o those_o holy_a woman_n who_o follow_v he_o with_o tear_n to_o the_o mount_n caluary_n where_o he_o be_v crucify_v luc._n 12._o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n weep_v not_o upon_o i_o but_o weep_v upon_o yourselves_o and_o upon_o your_o child_n for_o behold_v the_o day_n will_v come_v wherein_o they_o shall_v say_v bless_a be_v the_o barren_a and_o the_o womb_n that_o have_v not_o bear_v and_o the_o pap_n that_o have_v not_o give_v suck_v then_o shall_v they_o begin_v to_o say_v to_o the_o mountain_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o to_o the_o hill_n cover_v we_o for_o if_o in_o the_o green_a wood_n they_o do_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o dry_a what_o sball_n be_v do_v our_o lord_n be_v not_o offend_v neither_o do_v he_o prohibit_v the_o office_n of_o piety_n by_o the_o which_o those_o woman_n do_v bewail_v his_o passion_n but_o only_o he_o signify_v in_o his_o former_a word_n that_o those_o woman_n have_v great_a cause_n of_o lament_v who_o have_v bring_v forth_o wicked_a son_n &_o such_o of_o they_o diverse_o be_v who_o open_o cry_v out_o tolle_o tolle_o crucifige_fw-la eum_fw-la away_o away_o with_o he_o crucify_v he_o and_o let_v his_o blood_n be_v upon_o we_o and_o upon_o our_o child_n io._n 19_o for_o these_o man_n shall_v say_v 〈◊〉_d the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o the_o mountain_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o to_o the_o hill_n cover_v us._n for_o if_o in_o the_o green_a wood_n that_o be_v if_o in_o christ_n flourish_v withal_o kind_a of_o virtue_n the_o fire_n of_o his_o passion_n have_v so_o burn_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o what_o they_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o dry_a wood_n that_o be_v of_o wicked_a man_n in_o who_o all_o humour_n of_o charity_n be_v spend_v and_o exhaust_v to_o these_o two_o sacred_a text_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o which_o fear_n and_o weep_v to_o avoid_v the_o pain_n of_o hell_n be_v praise_v or_o commend_v by_o our_o lord_n we_o will_v adjoine_v two_o other_o place_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n s._n basill_n explicate_v that_o of_o the_o psalm_n timorem_fw-la domini_fw-la doceh●_n vos_fw-la thus_o write_v cogita_fw-la profundum_fw-la barathrum_n etc._n etc._n call_v to_o mind_n the_o depth_n of_o hell_n the_o inextricable_a darkness_n there_o the_o fire_n want_v light_n yet_o have_v the_o force_n of_o burn_v then_o think_v of_o that_o kind_n of_o worm_n cast_v out_o their_o venom_n and_o devour_v the_o flesh_n insatiable_o feed_v upon_o the_o same_o and_o fasten_v intolerable_a grief_n and_o pain_n through_o their_o gnaw_v in_o the_o last_o place_n which_o be_v most_o grievous_a of_o all_o remember_v that_o shame_n and_o everlasting_a confusion_n which_o shall_v there_o fall_v upon_o then_o fear_v this_o and_o through_o thy_o fear_n thereof_o withdraw_v thy_o soul_n and_o bridle_v it_o from_o all_o concupiscence_n of_o sin_n this_o fear_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o prophet_n promise_v that_o he_o will_v teach_v thus_o far_o s._n basill_n let_v we_o now_o hear_v s._n bernard_n thus_o speak_v in_o serm_n 16._o in_o cantica_fw-la ut_fw-la pave●_v gehennam_fw-la etc._n etc._n how_o much_o do_v i_o fear_v hell_n and_o tremble_v at_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o infernal_a beast_n at_o the_o hollowness_n &_o concavity_n of_o the_o place_n etc._n etc._n i_o much_o fear_v that_o gnaw_a worm_n and_o the_o broil_v fire_n the_o smoke_n and_o the_o vapour_n the_o sulphurous_a spirit_n of_o storm_n i_o fear_v those_o utter_a darkness_n who_o shall_v give_v to_o my_o head_n water_n here_o and_o to_o my_o eye_n a_o fountain_n of_o tear_n that_o so_o i_o may_v prevent_v that_o weep_a and_o stridour_n or_o gnash_v of_o the_o tooth_n there_o but_o doubtless_o neither_o s._n basill_n nor_o s._n bernard_n of_o which_o the_o one_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n the_o other_o of_o the_o latin_a be_v such_o sinner_n who_o only_o through_o fear_n do_v cease_v from_o sin_n but_o they_o be_v man_n perfect_a learned_a grave_a able_a to_o instruct_v other_o and_o actual_o do_v instruct_v not_o only_o the_o common_a people_n but_o the_o clergy_n and_o monk_n reduce_v they_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o perfection_n yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o see_v they_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v or_o permit_v weep_v for_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n but_o they_o also_o commend_v it_o exhort_v all_o man_n to_o conceive_v fear_n and_o to_o pour_v out_o tear_n even_o at_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o horror_n thereof_o now_o this_o foundation_n be_v lay_v we_o will_v brief_o show_v what_o and_o of_o what_o nature_n the_o torment_n of_o hell_n be_v and_o because_o we_o will_v not_o wander_v in_o our_o discourse_n in_o grope_v as_o it_o be_v at_o uncertain_a or_o conjectural_a point_n lest_o we_o may_v be_v think_v to_o suggest_v vain_a fear_n thereby_o to_o force_v tear_n from_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a and_o ignorant_a therefore_o we_o will_v produce_v and_o insist_v only_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v full_o and_o clear_o deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o find_v then_o that_o eight_o several_a kind_n of_o torment_n be_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n which_o belong_v to_o hell_n to_o wit_n privation_n of_o eternal_a beatitude_n which_o be_v call_v by_o the_o divine_v poena_n damni_fw-la the_o pain_n of_o the_o loss_n darkness_n fire_n the_o worm_n immobility_n the_o company_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o which_o pain_n in_o the_o damn_a weep_a and_o gnash_n of_o the_o tooth_n do_v proceed_v the_o which_o torment_n be_v call_v poena_n sensus_fw-la the_o pain_n of_o sense_n or_o feel_n and_o last_o a_o everlasting_a and_o interminable_a duration_n of_o all_o these_o torment_n 1._o well_o then_o the_o first_o be_v paena_fw-la damni_fw-la the_o payne_n of_o the_o loss_n it_o be_v a_o deviation_n and_o stray_v from_o our_o last_n end_n a_o want_n of_o the_o vision_n and_o sight_n of_o god_n a_o everlasting_a banishment_n from_o our_o celestial_a country_n a_o amission_n or_o deprivation_n of_o our_o hereditary_a right_n to_o